Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n desire_a desire_v great_a 33 3 2.1023 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30352 The history of the reformation of the Church of England. The first part of the progess made in it during the reign of K. Henry the VIII / by Gilbert Burnet. Burnet, Gilbert, 1643-1715.; White, Robert, 1645-1703. 1679 (1679) Wing B5797; ESTC R36341 824,193 805

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

before_o god_n and_o man_n not_o only_o to_o execute_v worthy_a punishment_n on_o i_o as_o a_o unlawful_a wife_n but_o to_o follow_v your_o affection_n already_o settle_v on_o that_o party_n for_o who_o sake_n i_o be_o now_o as_o i_o be_o who_o name_n i_o can_v some_o good_a while_n since_o have_v point_v unto_o your_o grace_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o my_o suspicion_n therein_o but_o if_o you_o have_v already_o determine_v of_o i_o and_o that_o not_o only_o my_o death_n but_o a_o infamous_a slander_n must_v bring_v you_o the_o enjoy_n of_o your_o desire_a happiness_n then_o i_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v pardon_v your_o great_a sin_n therein_o and_o likewise_o my_o enemy_n the_o instrument_n thereof_o and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o call_v you_o to_o a_o strict_a account_n for_o your_o unprincely_a and_o cruel_a usage_n of_o i_o at_o his_o general_n judgment-seat_n where_o both_o you_o and_o myself_o must_v short_o appear_v and_o in_o who_o judgement_n i_o doubt_v not_o whatsoever_o the_o world_n may_v think_v of_o i_o my_o innocence_n shall_v be_v open_o know_v and_o sufficient_o clear_v my_o last_o and_o only_a request_n shall_v be_v that_o myself_o may_v only_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o your_o grace_n displeasure_n and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o touch_v the_o innocent_a soul_n of_o those_o poor_a gentleman_n who_o as_o i_o understand_v be_v likewise_o in_o strait_a imprisonment_n for_o my_o sake_n if_o ever_o i_o have_v find_v favour_n in_o your_o sight_n if_o ever_o the_o name_n of_o ann_n boleyn_n have_v be_v please_v in_o your_o ear_n then_o let_v i_o obtain_v this_o request_n and_o i_o will_v so_o leave_v to_o trouble_v your_o grace_n any_o further_a with_o my_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o the_o trinity_n to_o have_v your_o grace_n in_o his_o good_a keep_n and_o to_o direct_v you_o in_o all_o your_o action_n from_o my_o doleful_a prison_n in_o the_o tower_n this_o 6_o the_o of_o may._n your_o most_o loyal_a and_o ever_o faithful_a wife_n ann_n boleyn_n v._o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o convocation_n concern_v general-council_n publish_a by_o the_o l._n herbert_n from_o the_o original_a as_o concern_v general-council_n like-as_a we_o teach_v by_o long_a experience_n do_v perfect_o know_v that_o there_o never_o be_v nor_o be_v any_o thing_n devise_v invent_v or_o institute_v by_o our_o forefather_n more_o expedient_a or_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o establishment_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o abolish_n of_o sect_n and_o schism_n and_o final_o for_o the_o reduce_n of_o christ_n people_n unto_o one_o perfect_a unity_n and_o concord_n in_o his_o religion_n than_o by_o the_o have_v of_o general-council_n so_o that_o the_o same_o be_v lawful_o have_v and_o congregat_v in_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it and_o be_v also_o conform_a and_o agreeable_a as_o well_o concern_v the_o surety_n and_o indifferency_n of_o the_o place_n as_o all_o other_o point_v requisite_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o same_o unto_o that_o wholesome_a and_o godly_a institution_n and_o usage_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v at_o first_o devise_v and_o use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n even_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n teach_v by_o like_a experience_n we_o esteem_v repute_n and_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v ne_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n more_o pestilent_a and_o pernicious_a to_o the_o common-weal_n of_o christendom_n or_o whereby_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n have_v in_o time_n past_a or_o hereafter_o may_v be_v soon_o deface_v or_o subvert_v or_o whereof_o have_v and_o may_v ensue_v more_o contention_n more_o discord_n and_o other_o devilish_a effect_n than_o when_o such_o general_a council_n have_v or_o shall_v be_v assemble_v not_o christian_o nor_o charitable_o but_o for_o and_o upon_o private_a malice_n and_o ambition_n or_o other_o worldly_a and_o carnal_a respect_n and_o consideration_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o gregory_n nazianzenus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o one_o procopius_n wherein_o he_o write_v this_o sentence_n follow_v sic_fw-la sentio_fw-la si_fw-la verum_fw-la scribendum_fw-la est_fw-la omnes_fw-la conventus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la fugiendos_fw-la esse_fw-la quia_fw-la nullius_fw-la synodi_fw-la finem_fw-la vidi_fw-la bonum_fw-la neque_fw-la habentem_fw-la magis_fw-la solutionem_fw-la malorum_fw-la quam_fw-la incrementum_fw-la nam_fw-la cupiditates_fw-la contentionum_fw-la &_o gloria_fw-la sed_fw-la ne_fw-la pute_fw-la i_o odiosum_fw-la ista_fw-la scribentem_fw-la vincunt_fw-la rationem_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o think_v this_o if_o i_o shall_v write_v true_o that_o all_o general_n council_n be_v to_o be_v eschew_v for_o i_o never_o see_v that_o they_o produce_v any_o good_a end_n or_o effect_v nor_o that_o any_o provision_n or_o remedy_n but_o rather_o increase_v of_o mischief_n proceed_v of_o they_o for_o the_o desire_n of_o maintenance_n of_o man_n opinion_n and_o ambition_n of_o glory_n but_o reckon_v not_o that_o i_o write_v this_o of_o malice_n have_v always_o in_o they_o overcome_v reason_n wherefore_o we_o think_v that_o christian_a prince_n especial_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n aught_o and_o must_v with_o all_o their_o will_n power_n and_o diligence_n foresee_v and_o provide_v ne_fw-la sanctissima_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la majorum_fw-la instituta_fw-la ad_fw-la improbissimos_fw-la ambitionis_fw-la aut_fw-la malitiae_fw-la effectus_fw-la explendos_fw-la diversissimo_fw-la svo_fw-la sine_fw-la &_o sceleratissimo_fw-la pervertantur_fw-la neve_n ad_fw-la alium_fw-la praetextum_fw-la possint_fw-la valere_fw-la &_o long_o diversum_fw-la effectum_fw-la orbi_fw-la producere_fw-la quam_fw-la sanctissima_fw-la rei_fw-la facies_fw-la prae●●se_fw-la ferat_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v lest_o the_o most_o noble_a wholesome_a institution_n of_o our_o elder_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v pervert_v to_o a_o most_o contrary_a and_o most_o wicked_a end_n and_o effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o fulfil_v and_o satisfy_v the_o wicked_a affection_n of_o man_n ambition_n and_o malice_n or_o lest_o they_o may_v prevail_v for_o any_o other_o colour_n or_o bring_v forth_o any_o other_o effect_n than_o their_o most_o virtuous_a and_o laudable_a countenance_n do_v outward_o to_o the_o world_n show_v or_o pretend_v and_o first_o of_o all_o we_o think_v that_o they_o ought_v principal_o to_o consider_v who_o have_v the_o authority_n to_o call_v together_o a_o general_n council_n second_o whether_o the_o cause_n allege_v be_v so_o weighty_a and_o so_o urgent_a that_o necessary_o they_o require_v a_o general_n council_n nor_o can_v otherwise_o be_v remedy_v three_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o general_n council_n four_o what_o order_n of_o proceed_v be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o same_o and_o how_o the_o opinion_n or_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v consult_v or_o ask_v five_o what_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v or_o defend_v with_o diverse_a other_o thing_n which_o in_o general_a council_n ought_v of_o reason_n and_o equity_n to_o be_v observe_v and_o as_o unto_o the_o first_o point_n we_o think_v that_o neither_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o any_o one_o prince_n of_o what_o estate_n degree_n or_o pre-eminence_n soever_o he_o be_v may_v by_o his_o own_o authority_n call_v indite_v or_o summon_v any_o general_a council_n without_o the_o express_a consent_n assent_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o residue_n of_o christian_a prince_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o have_v within_o their_o own_o realm_n and_o signory_n imperium_fw-la merum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o such_o as_o have_v the_o whole_a entire_a and_o supreme_a government_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o their_o subject_n without_o knowledge_v or_o recognise_v of_o any_o other_o supreme_a power_n or_o authority_n and_o this_o to_o be_v true_a we_o be_v induce_v to_o think_v by_o many_o and_o sundry_a as_o well_o example_n as_o great_a reason_n and_o authority_n the_o which_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v overlong_a and_o tedious_a to_o express_v here_o particular_o we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o omit_v the_o same_o for_o this_o present_a and_o in_o witness_n that_o this_o be_v our_o plain_a and_o determinate_a sentence_n opinion_n and_o judgement_n touch_v the_o premise_n we_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n under-written_a be_v congregate_v together_o in_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n and_o represent_v the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o the_o same_o here_o to_o these_o present_v subscribe_v our_o name_n the_o 20_o the_o of_o july_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1536._o 28._o hen._n 8._o sign_v by_o thomas_n cromwell_n thomas_n cantuariensis_n this_o johannes_n london_n with_o 13_o bishop_n and_o of_o abbot_n prior_n arch-deacon_n dean_n proctor_n clerk_n and_o other_o minister_n 49._o vi_o instruction_n for_o the_o king_n commissioner_n for_o a_o new_a survey_n and_o a●_n inventory_n to_o be_v make_v of_o all_o the_o demesne_n land_n good_n and_o chattel_n appertain_v to_o any_o house_n of_o religion_n of_o monk_n cannon_n and_o nun_n within_o their_o commission_n according_a
be_v forfeit_v these_o abbot_n can_v have_v no_o successor_n yet_o it_o seem_v the_o seizure_n of_o these_o abbey_n be_v found_v on_o that_o statute_n and_o this_o stretch_v of_o the_o law_n occasion_v that_o explanation_n which_o be_v add_v of_o the_o word_n estate_n of_o inheritance_n in_o the_o statute_n make_v in_o edward_n the_o sixth_n reign_n about_o treason_n where_o it_o be_v express_v that_o traitor_n shall_v forfeit_v to_o the_o crown_n what_o land_n they_o have_v of_o any_o estate_n of_o inheritance_n to_o which_o be_v add_v in_o their_o own_o right_n it_o seem_v on_o design_n to_o cut_v off_o all_o pretence_n for_o such_o proceed_n for_o the_o future_a as_o have_v be_v in_o this_o reign_n but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o illegality_n in_o these_o seizure_n the_o follow_a parliament_n do_v at_o least_o tacit_o justify_v they_o for_o they_o except_v out_o of_o the_o provisos_fw-la make_v concern_v the_o abbey_n that_o be_v suppress_v such_o as_o have_v be_v forfeit_v and_o seize_v on_o by_o any_o attaindor_n of_o treason_n another_o surrender_n be_v not_o unlike_o these_o but_o rather_o less_o justifiable_a many_o of_o the_o carthusian_n monk_n of_o london_n be_v execute_v for_o their_o open_a deny_v of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o for_o receive_v book_n from_o foreign_a part_n against_o his_o marriage_n and_o other_o proceed_n divers_a also_o of_o the_o same_o house_n that_o favour_v they_o but_o so_o secret_o that_o clear_a proof_n can_v not_o be_v find_v to_o convict_v they_o be_v keep_v prisoner_n in_o their_o cell_n till_o they_o die_v but_o the_o prior_n be_v a_o worthy_a man_n of_o who_o thomas_n bedyl_n one_o of_o the_o visitor_n write_v that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o such_o charity_n that_o he_o have_v not_o see_v the_o like_a and_o that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n be_v much_o on_o that_o house_n and_o therefore_o he_o advise_v that_o the_o house_n may_v be_v convert_v to_o some_o good_a use_n but_o the_o prior_n be_v make_v to_o resign_v with_o this_o preamble_n that_o many_o of_o that_o house_n have_v offend_v the_o king_n so_o that_o their_o good_n may_v be_v just_o confiscate_v and_o themselves_o adjudge_v to_o a_o severe_a death_n which_o they_o desire_v to_o avoid_v by_o a_o humble_a submission_n and_o surrender_v of_o their_o house_n to_o the_o king_n but_o there_o be_v great_a complaint_n make_v of_o the_o visitor_n as_o if_o they_o have_v practise_v with_o the_o abbot_n and_o prior_n to_o make_v these_o surrender_n and_o that_o they_o have_v conspire_v with_o they_o to_o cheat_v the_o king_n and_o have_v private_o embezele_v most_o of_o the_o plate_n and_o furniture_n the_o abbess_n of_o cheapstow_n complain_v in_o particular_a of_o doctor_n london_n one_o of_o the_o visitor_n that_o he_o have_v be_v corrupt_v her_o nun_n and_o general_o it_o be_v cry_v out_o on_o that_o underhand_o and_o ill_a practice_n be_v use_v therefore_o to_o quiet_a these_o report_n and_o to_o give_v some_o colour_n to_o justify_v what_o they_o be_v about_o all_o the_o foul_a story_n that_o can_v be_v find_v out_o be_v publish_v to_o defame_v these_o house_n battel-abbey_n be_v represent_v to_o be_v a_o little_a sodom_n so_o be_v christ_n church_n in_o canterbury_n with_o several_a other_o house_n but_o for_o whoredom_n and_o adultery_n they_o find_v instance_n without_o number_n and_o of_o many_o other_o unnatural_a practice_n and_o secret_a lust_n with_o art_n to_o hinder_v conception_n and_o make_v abortion_n but_o no_o story_n become_v so_o public_a as_o a_o discovery_n make_v of_o the_o prior_n of_o the_o cross_v friar_n in_o london_n who_o on_o a_o friday_n at_o eleven_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o day_n be_v find_v in_o bed_n with_o a_o whore_n 1536._o he_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n and_o pray_v those_o who_o surprise_v he_o not_o to_o publish_v his_o shame_n but_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o make_v some_o advantage_n by_o it_o and_o ask_v he_o money_n he_o give_v they_o 30_o lib._n which_o he_o protest_v be_v all_o he_o have_v but_o he_o promise_v they_o 30_o lib._n more_o yet_o fail_v in_o the_o payment_n a_o suit_n follow_v on_o it_o and_o in_o a_o bill_n which_o i_o have_v see_v give_v to_o cromwell_n than_o master_n of_o the_o roll_n the_o case_n be_v relate_v but_o all_o story_n of_o this_o king_n serve_v only_o to_o disgrace_v those_o abbot_n or_o monk_n that_o be_v so_o faulty_a discover_v and_o the_o people_n general_o say_v these_o be_v personal_a crime_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v punish_v but_o they_o be_v no_o way_n satisfy_v with_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n against_o whole_a house_n for_o the_o fault_n of_o a_o few_o therefore_o another_o way_n be_v think_v on_o which_o indeed_o prove_v more_o effectual_a both_o for_o recover_v the_o people_n out_o of_o the_o superstitious_a fondness_n they_o have_v for_o their_o image_n and_o relic_n and_o for_o discover_v the_o secret_a imposture_n that_o have_v be_v long_o practise_v in_o these_o house_n and_o this_o be_v to_o order_v the_o visitor_n to_o examine_v well_o all_o the_o relic_n and_o feign_a image_n to_o which_o pilgrimage_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v make_v in_o this_o doctor_n london_n do_v great_a service_n from_o read_v he_o write_v that_o the_o chief_a relic_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o nation_n be_v there_o a_o angel_n with_o one_o wing_n that_o bring_v over_o the_o spear_n head_n that_o pierce_v our_o savior_n side_n to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o long_a inventory_n of_o their_o other_o relic_n and_o say_v there_o be_v as_o many_o more_o as_o will_v fill_v four_o sheet_n of_o paper_n he_o also_o write_v from_o other_o place_n that_o he_o have_v everywhere_o take_v down_o their_o image_n and_o trinket_n at_o st._n edmundsbury_n as_o john_n ap_fw-mi rice_n inform_v they_o find_v some_o of_o the_o coal_n that_o roast_v st._n laurence_n the_o paring_n of_o st._n edmund_n toe_n st._n thomas_n becket_n penknife_n and_o boot_n with_o as_o many_o piece_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o will_v make_v a_o large_a whole_a cross._n they_o have_v also_o relic_n against_o rain_n and_o for_o hinder_v weed_n to_o spring_v but_o to_o pursue_v this_o further_a be_v endless_a the_o relic_n be_v so_o innumerable_a and_o the_o value_n which_o the_o people_n have_v of_o they_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o this_o that_o a_o piece_n of_o st._n andrews_n finger_n set_v in_o a_o ounce_n of_o silver_n be_v lay_v to_o pledge_v by_o the_o house_n of_o westacre_n for_o 40_o lib._n but_o the_o visitor_n when_o they_o suppress_v that_o house_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o redeem_v it_o at_o so_o high_a a_o rate_n for_o their_o image_n some_o of_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o london_n and_o be_v there_o at_o st._n paul_n cross_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o the_o people_n break_v break_v that_o they_o may_v be_v full_o convince_v of_o the_o juggle_a imposture_n of_o the_o monk_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o crucifix_n of_o boxley_n in_o kent_n common_o call_v the_o rood_n of_o grace_n to_o which_o many_o pilgrimage_n have_v be_v make_v because_o it_o be_v observe_v sometime_o to_o bow_v and_o to_o lift_v itself_o up_o to_o shake_v and_o to_o stir_v head_n hands_z and_o foot_n to_o roll_n the_o eye_n move_z the_o lip_n and_o bend_v the_o brow_n all_o which_o be_v look_v on_o by_o the_o abuse_a multitude_n as_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o divine_a power_n these_o be_v now_o public_o discover_v to_o have_v be_v cheat_v for_o the_o spring_n be_v show_v by_o which_o all_o these_o motion_n be_v make_v upon_o which_o john_n hilsey_n then_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n make_v a_o sermon_n and_o break_v the_o rood_n in_o piece_n there_o be_v also_o another_o famous_a imposture_n discover_v at_o hales_n in_o glocestershire_n where_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v in_o a_o viol_n of_o crystal_n which_o the_o people_n sometime_o see_v but_o sometime_o they_o can_v not_o see_v it_o so_o they_o be_v make_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o signal_n a_o favour_n 1538._o as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n and_o so_o they_o continue_v to_o make_v present_n till_o they_o bribe_v heaven_n to_o give_v they_o the_o sight_n of_o so_o bless_a a_o relic_n ●●glese_fw-mi this_o be_v now_o discover_v to_o have_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o a_o duck_n which_o they_o renew_v every_o week_n and_o the_o one_o side_n of_o the_o viol_n be_v so_o thick_a that_o there_o be_v no_o see_v through_o it_o but_o the_o other_o be_v clear_a and_o transparent_a and_o it_o be_v so_o place_v near_o the_o altar_n that_o one_o in_o a_o secret_a place_n behind_o can_v turn_v either_o side_n of_o it_o outward_a so_o when_o they_o have_v drain_v the_o pilgrim_n that_o come_v thither_o of_o all_o they_o have_v
advantage_n a_o man_n of_o his_o temper_n will_v draw_v from_o it_o warham_n be_v lord_n chancellor_n the_o first_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n but_o retire_v to_o give_v place_n to_o this_o aspire_a favourite_n who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o the_o great_a seal_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o interfering_n between_o the_o legantine_n and_o chancery_n court_v and_o perhaps_o it_o wrought_v somewhat_o on_o his_o vanity_n that_o even_o after_o he_o be_v cardinal_n warham_n as_o lord_n chancellor_n take_v place_n of_o he_o as_o appear_v from_o the_o entry_n make_v in_o the_o journal_o of_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v the_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n and_o afterward_o give_v he_o place_n as_o appear_v on_o many_o occasion_n particular_o in_o the_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n 1530_o set_v down_o by_o the_o lord_n herbert_n which_o the_o cardinal_n subscribe_v before_o warham_n we_o have_v nothing_o on_o record_n to_o show_v what_o a_o speaker_n he_o be_v for_o all_o the_o journal_o of_o parliament_n from_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o 25_o year_n of_o this_o king_n be_v lose_v but_o it_o be_v like_a he_o speak_v as_o his_o predecessor_n in_o that_o office_n warham_n do_v who_o speech_n as_o they_o be_v enter_v in_o the_o journal_o be_v sermon_n begin_v with_o a_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o expound_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o business_n they_o be_v to_o go_v upon_o stuff_v they_o with_o the_o most_o fulsome_a flattery_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v possible_a the_o next_o in_o favour_n and_o power_n be_v the_o lord_n treasurer_n restore_v to_o his_o father_n honour_n of_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n to_o who_o his_o son_n succeed_v in_o that_o office_n as_o well_o as_o in_o his_o hereditary_a honour_n and_o manage_v his_o interest_n with_o the_o king_n so_o dexterous_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o all_o the_o change_n that_o follow_v and_o continue_a lord_n treasurer_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o this_o king_n till_o near_o the_o end_n of_o it_o when_o he_o fall_v through_o jealousy_n rather_o than_o guilt_n this_o show_v how_o dexterous_a a_o man_n he_o be_v that_o can_v stand_v so_o long_o in_o that_o employment_n under_o such_o a_o king_n but_o the_o chief_a favourite_n in_o the_o king_n pleasure_n be_v charles_n brandon_n a_o gallant_a graceful_a person_n one_o of_o the_o strong_a man_n of_o the_o age_n and_o so_o a_o fit_a match_n for_o the_o king_n at_o his_o just_n and_o tilt_n which_o be_v the_o manly_a diversion_n of_o that_o time_n and_o the_o king_n take_v much_o pleasure_n in_o it_o be_v of_o a_o robu_v body_n and_o singular_o expert_a at_o it_o he_o who_o be_v so_o able_a to_o second_v he_o in_o these_o course_n grow_v mighty_o in_o his_o favour_n so_o that_o he_o make_v he_o first_o viscount_n lisle_n and_o some_o month_n after_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n pat_o nor_o be_v he_o less_o in_o the_o lady_n favour_n than_o the_o king_n for_o his_o sister_n the_o lady_n mary_n like_v he_o and_o be_v but_o so_o long_o marry_v to_o king_n lewis_n of_o france_n as_o to_o make_v her_o queen_n dowager_n of_o france_n she_o resolve_v to_o choose_v her_o second_o husband_n herself_o and_o cast_v her_o eye_n on_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n who_o be_v then_o send_v over_o to_o the_o court_n of_o france_n her_o brother_n have_v design_v the_o marriage_n between_o they_o yet_o will_v not_o open_o give_v his_o consent_n to_o it_o but_o she_o by_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o woo_v prefix_v he_o the_o term_n of_o four_o day_n to_o gain_v her_o consent_n in_o which_o she_o tell_v he_o if_o he_o do_v not_o prevail_v he_o shall_v for_o ever_o lose_v all_o his_o hope_n of_o have_v she_o though_o after_o such_o a_o declaration_n he_o be_v like_a to_o meet_v with_o no_o great_a difficulty_n from_o she_o so_o they_o be_v marry_v 1515._o and_o the_o king_n be_v easy_o pacify_v and_o receive_v they_o into_o favour_n neither_o do_v his_o favour_n die_v with_o she_o for_o it_o continue_v all_o his_o life_n but_o he_o never_o meddle_v much_o in_o business_n 1533._o and_o by_o all_o that_o appear_v be_v a_o better_a courtier_n than_o statesman_n little_o needs_o be_v say_v of_o any_o other_o person_n more_o than_o will_v afterward_o occur_v the_o king_n love_v to_o raise_v mean_a person_n and_o upon_o the_o least_o distaste_n to_o throw_v they_o down_o and_o fall_v into_o disgrace_n he_o spare_v not_o to_o sacrifice_v they_o to_o public_a discontent_n his_o court_n be_v magnificent_a and_o his_o expense_n vast_a he_o indulge_v himself_o in_o his_o pleasure_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o child_n beside_o the_o lady_n mary_n fail_v by_o the_o queen_n he_o who_o of_o all_o thing_n desire_v issue_v most_o keep_v one_o elizabeth_n blunt_n by_o who_o he_o have_v henry_n fitzroy_n pa●_n who_o in_o the_o 17_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o create_v earl_n of_o nottingham_n and_o the_o same_o day_n make_v he_o duke_n of_o richmond_n and_o somerset_n ●536_n and_o intend_v afterward_o to_o have_v put_v he_o in_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n after_o his_o other_o child_n but_o his_o death_n prevent_v it_o as_o for_o his_o parliament_n he_o take_v great_a care_n to_o keep_v a_o good_a understanding_n with_o they_o and_o chief_o with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o by_o which_o mean_v he_o seldom_o fail_v to_o carry_v matter_n as_o he_o please_v among_o they_o only_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o 14_o and_o 15_o of_o his_o reign_n the_o demand_v of_o the_o subsidy_n towards_o the_o war_n with_o france_n be_v so_o high_a as_o 800000_o lib._n the_o 5_o of_o man_n good_n and_o land_n to_o be_v pay_v in_o four_o year_n and_o the_o cardinal_n be_v much_o hate_a there_o be_v great_a opposition_n make_v to_o it_o for_o which_o the_o cardinal_n blame_v sir_n thomas_n more_n much_o who_o be_v then_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o find_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v be_v not_o above_o the_o half_a of_o what_o be_v ask_v go_v himself_o to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o desire_v to_o hear_v the_o reason_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v his_o demand_n that_o he_o may_v answer_v they_o but_o he_o be_v tell_v the_o order_n of_o their_o house_n be_v to_o reason_n only_o among_o themselves_o and_o so_o go_v away_o much_o dissatisfy_v it_o be_v with_o great_a difficulty_n that_o they_o obtain_v a_o subsidy_n of_o 3_o s._n in_o the_o lib._n to_o be_v pay_v in_o four_o year_n this_o disappointment_n it_o seem_v do_v so_o offend_v the_o cardinal_n that_o as_o no_o parliament_n have_v be_v call_v for_o seven_o year_n before_o so_o there_o be_v none_o summon_v for_o seven_o year_n after_o and_o thus_o stand_v the_o civil_a government_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 19_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n when_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o divorce_n be_v first_o move_v but_o i_o shall_v next_o open_v the_o state_n of_o affair_n in_o reference_n to_o religious_a and_o spiritual_a concern_v scholar_n king_n henry_n be_v breed_v with_o more_o care_n than_o have_v be_v usual_o bestow_v on_o the_o education_n of_o prince_n for_o many_o age_n who_o have_v be_v only_o train_v up_o to_o those_o exercise_n that_o prepare_v they_o to_o war_n and_o if_o they_o can_v read_v and_o write_v more_o be_v not_o expect_v of_o they_o but_o learning_n begin_v now_o to_o flourish_v and_o as_o the_o house_n of_o medici_n in_o florence_n have_v great_a honour_n by_o the_o protection_n it_o give_v to_o learned_a man_n so_o other_o prince_n everywhere_o cherish_v the_o muse_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o though_o illiterate_a himself_o yet_o take_v care_n to_o have_v his_o child_n instruct_v in_o good_a letter_n and_o it_o general_o pass_v current_n that_o he_o breed_v his_o second_o son_n a_o scholar_n have_v design_v he_o to_o be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_o that_o have_v no_o foundation_n for_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o time_n tell_v that_o his_o elder_a brother_n prince_n arthur_n be_v also_o breed_v a_o scholar_n and_o all_o the_o instruction_n king_n henry_n have_v in_o learning_n must_v have_v be_v after_o his_o brother_n be_v dead_a when_o that_o design_n have_v vanish_v with_o his_o life_n for_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o 18_o of_o june_n 1491._o and_o prince_n arthur_n die_v the_o second_o of_o april_n 1502._o he_o be_v not_o full_a eleven_o year_n of_o age_n when_o he_o become_v prince_n of_o wales_n at_o which_o age_n prince_n have_v seldom_o make_v any_o great_a progress_n in_o learning_n but_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o judge_v either_o that_o it_o will_v make_v his_o son_n great_a prince_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o management_n of_o their_o affair_n or_o be_v jealous_a of_o their_o look_v too_o early_o into_o business_n or_o their_o pretend_v to_o the_o crown_n
to_o go_v to_o cambridge_n for_o try_v who_o be_v the_o fautor_n of_o heresy_n there_o but_o he_o as_o legate_z do_v inhibit_v it_o upon_o what_o ground_n i_o can_v imagine_v which_o be_v bring_v against_o he_o afterward_o in_o parliament_n art_n 43._o of_o his_o impeachment_n yet_o when_o these_o doctrine_n be_v spread_v everywhere_o he_o call_v a_o meeting_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o divine_n and_o canonist_n about_o london_n where_o thomas_n bilney_n and_o thomas_n arthur_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o and_o article_n be_v bring_v in_o against_o they_o the_o whole_a process_n be_v set_v down_o at_o length_n by_o fox_n in_o all_o point_n according_a to_o tonstall's_n register_n except_o one_o fault_n in_o the_o translation_n when_o the_o cardinal_n ask_v bilney_n whether_o he_o have_v not_o take_v a_o oath_n before_o not_o to_o preach_v or_o defend_v any_o of_o luther_n doctrine_n he_o confess_v he_o have_v do_v it_o but_o not_o judicial_o judicialiter_fw-la in_fw-la the_o register_n this_o fox_n translate_v not_o lawful_o in_o all_o the_o other_o particular_n there_o be_v a_o exact_a agreement_n between_o the_o register_n and_o his_o acts._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o court_n be_v that_o after_o examination_n of_o witness_n and_o several_a other_o step_n in_o the_o process_n which_o the_o cardinal_n leave_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n to_o manage_v bilney_n stand_v out_o long_o and_o seem_v resolve_v to_o suffer_v for_o a_o good_a conscience_n in_o the_o end_n what_o through_o human_a infirmity_n what_o through_o the_o great_a importunity_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n who_o set_v all_o his_o friend_n on_o he_o he_o do_v abjure_v on_o the_o 7_o the_o of_o december_n as_o arthur_n have_v do_v on_o the_o 2_o d._n of_o that_o month._n and_o though_o bilney_n be_v relap_v and_o so_o be_v to_o expect_v no_o mercy_n by_o the_o law_n yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n enjoin_v he_o penance_n and_o let_v he_o go_v for_o tonstall_n be_v a_o man_n both_o of_o good_a learning_n and_o a_o unblemished_a life_n these_o virtue_n produce_v one_o of_o their_o ordinary_a effect_n in_o he_o great_a moderation_n that_o be_v so_o eminent_a in_o he_o that_o at_o no_o time_n do_v he_o dip_v his_o hand_n in_o blood_n geoffrey_n loni_n and_o thomas_n gerard_n also_o abjure_v for_o have_v have_v luther_n book_n and_o defend_v his_o opinion_n these_o be_v the_o proceed_n against_o heretic_n in_o the_o first_o half_a of_o this_o reign_n and_o thus_o far_o i_o have_v open_v the_o state_n of_o affair_n both_o as_o to_o religious_a and_o civil_a concern_v for_o the_o first_o 18_o year_n of_o this_o king_n time_n with_o what_o observation_n i_o can_v gather_v of_o the_o disposition_n and_o temper_n of_o the_o nation_n at_o that_o time_n which_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o change_n that_o follow_v afterward_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n the_o history_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n book_n ii_o of_o the_o process_n of_o divorce_n between_o king_n henry_n and_o queen_n katherine_n and_o of_o what_o pass_v from_o the_o nineteen_o to_o the_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n in_o which_o he_o be_v declare_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n king_n henry_n hitherto_o live_v at_o ease_n and_o enjoy_v his_o pleasure_n divorce_n he_o make_v war_n with_o much_o honour_n and_o that_o always_o produce_v a_o just_a and_o advantageous_a peace_n he_o have_v no_o trouble_n upon_o he_o in_o all_o his_o affair_n except_o about_o the_o get_n of_o money_n and_o even_o in_o that_o the_o cardinal_z ease_v he_o but_o now_o a_o domestic_a trouble_n arise_v which_o perplex_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o government_n and_o draw_v after_o it_o consequence_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n spain_n henry_n the_o 7_o the_o upon_o wise_a and_o good_a consideration_n resolve_v to_o link_v himself_o in_o a_o close_a confederacy_n with_o ferdinand_n and_o isabel_n king_n of_o castille_n and_o arragon_n and_o with_o the_o house_n of_o burgundy_n against_o france_n which_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o last_a and_o dangerous_a enemy_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o a_o match_n be_v agree_v on_o between_o his_o son_n prince_z arthur_z and_o katherine_n the_o infanta_n of_o spain_n who_o elder_a sister_n joan_n be_v marry_v to_o philip_n that_o be_v then_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n and_o earl_n of_o flanders_n out_o of_o which_o arise_v a_o triple_a alliance_n between_o england_n spain_n and_o burgundy_n against_o the_o king_n of_o france_n who_o be_v then_o become_v formidable_a to_o all_o about_o he_o there_o be_v give_v with_o her_o 200000_o duckat_n the_o great_a portion_n that_o have_v be_v give_v for_o many_o age_n with_o any_o princess_n which_o make_v it_o not_o the_o less_o acceptable_a to_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o effigy_n catharinae_n principis_fw-la arthuri_fw-la uxoris_fw-la henrico_n regi_fw-la nuptae_fw-la h._n holbe●n_n pinxit_fw-la r._n white_a sculp_v 1486._o nata_fw-la 1501._o nou._n 14._o arthuro_n nupsit_fw-la 1509._o jun._n 3._o henrico_n regi_fw-la nupsit_fw-la 1526._o toro_fw-it exclusa_fw-la 1533._o may._n 23_o incesti_fw-la damnata_fw-la 1536._o jan._n 8._o obijt_fw-la print_a for_o rich_a chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n &_o crown_n in_o st_n paul_n church_n yard_n the_o infanta_n be_v bring_v into_o england_n 1501._o and_o on_o the_o 14_o of_o nou._n be_v marry_v at_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o wales_n they_o live_v together_o as_o man_n and_o wife_n till_o the_o 2d_o of_o april_n follow_v and_o not_o only_o have_v their_o bed_n solemn_o blessed_v when_o they_o be_v put_v in_o it_o on_o the_o night_n of_o their_o marriage_n but_o also_o be_v see_v public_o in_o bed_n for_o several_a day_n after_o herbert_n and_o go_v down_o to_o live_v at_o ludlow-castle_n in_o wales_n where_o they_o still_o bed_v together_o but_o prince_n arthur_n though_o a_o strong_a and_o healthful_a youth_n when_o he_o marry_v she_o yet_o die_v soon_o after_o which_o some_o thought_n be_v hasten_v by_o his_o too_o early_a marriage_n 1502._o the_o spanish_a ambassador_n have_v by_o his_o master_n order_n take_v proof_n of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o marriage_n and_o send_v they_o into_o spain_n the_o young_a prince_n also_o himself_o have_v by_o many_o expression_n give_v his_o servant_n cause_n to_o believe_v that_o his_o marriage_n be_v consummate_v the_o first_o night_n which_o in_o a_o youth_n of_o sixteen_o year_n of_o age_n that_o be_v vigorous_a and_o healthful_a be_v not_o at_o all_o judge_v strange_a it_o be_v so_o constant_o believe_v that_o when_o he_o die_v his_o young_a brother_n henry_n duke_n of_o york_n be_v not_o call_v prince_n of_o wales_n for_o some_o considerable_a time_n some_o say_v for_o one_o month_n some_o for_o 6_o month_n seven_o and_o he_o be_v not_o create_v prince_n of_o wales_n till_o 10_o month_n be_v elapse_v viz._n in_o the_o february_n follow_v when_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o his_o brother_n wife_n be_v not_o with_o child_n by_o he_o these_o thing_n be_v afterward_o look_v on_o as_o a_o full_a demonstration_n be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o thing_n be_v capable_a of_o that_o the_o princess_n be_v not_o a_o virgin_n after_o prince_n arthur_n death_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o state_n still_o stand_v for_o keep_v up_o the_o alliance_n against_o france_n brother_n and_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o let_v so_o great_a a_o revenue_n as_o she_o have_v in_o jointure_n be_v carry_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n it_o be_v propose_v that_o she_o shall_v be_v marry_v to_o the_o young_a brother_n henry_n now_o prince_n of_o wales_n the_o two_o prelate_n that_o be_v then_o in_o great_a esteem_n with_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o be_v warham_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o fox_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n the_o former_a deliver_v his_o opinion_n against_o it_o herbert_n and_o tell_v the_o king_n that_o he_o think_v it_o be_v neither_o honourable_a nor_o well-pleasing_a to_o god_n the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n persuade_v it_o and_o for_o the_o objection_n that_o be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o murmur_a of_o the_o people_n who_o do_v not_o like_o a_o marriage_n that_o be_v disputable_a lest_o out_o of_o it_o new_a war_n shall_v afterward_o arise_v about_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n the_o pope_n dispensation_n be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o answer_v all_o and_o his_o authority_n be_v then_o so_o undisputed_a that_o it_o do_v it_o effectual_o so_o a_o bull_n be_v obtain_v on_o the_o 26_o of_o decemb._n 1503_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o authority_n first_o have_v receive_v a_o petition_n from_o prince_n henry_n and_o the_o princess_n katherine_n bearing_n that_o whereas_o the_o princess_n be_v lawful_o marry_v to_o prince_n arthur_n which_o be_v
perhaps_o consummate_v by_o the_o carnalis_fw-la copula_fw-la who_o be_v dead_a without_o any_o issue_n but_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o marry_v for_o preserve_v the_o peace_n between_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o spain_n do_v petition_v his_o holiness_n for_o his_o dispensation_n therefore_o the_o pope_n out_o of_o his_o care_n to_o maintain_v peace_n among_o all_o catholic_n king_n do_v absolve_v they_o from_o all_o censure_n under_o which_o they_o may_v be_v and_o dispense_v with_o the_o impediment_n of_o their_o affinity_n notwithstanding_o any_o apostolical_a constitution_n or_o ordinance_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o marry_v or_o if_o they_o be_v already_o marry_v he_o confirm_v it_o require_v their_o confessor_n to_o enjoin_v they_o some_o healthful_a penance_n for_o their_o have_v marry_v before_o the_o dispensation_n be_v obtain_v herbert_n it_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v ready_o grant_v this_o for_o though_o very_a many_o both_o cardinal_n and_o divine_n do_v then_o oppose_v it_o yet_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o papacy_n which_o be_v prefer_v to_o all_o other_o consideration_n require_v it_o for_o as_o that_o pope_n be_v a_o great_a enemy_n to_o lewis_n the_o 12_o the_o french_a king_n will_v have_v do_v any_o thing_n to_o make_v a_o alliance_n against_o he_o firm_a so_o he_o be_v a_o warlike_a pope_n who_o consider_v religion_n very_o little_a and_o therefore_o may_v be_v easy_o persuade_v to_o confirm_v a_o thing_n that_o must_v needs_o oblige_v the_o succeed_a king_n of_o england_n to_o maintain_v the_o papal_a authority_n since_o from_o it_o they_o derive_v their_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n little_a think_v that_o by_o a_o secret_a direction_n of_o a_o overrule_a providence_n that_o deed_n of_o he_o will_v occasion_v the_o extirpation_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n in_o england_n so_o strange_o do_v god_n make_v the_o device_n of_o man_n become_v of_o no_o effect_n and_o turn_v they_o to_o a_o contrary_a end_n to_o that_o which_o be_v intend_v upon_o this_o bull_n they_o be_v marry_v the_o prince_n of_o wales_n be_v yet_o under_o age._n but_o warham_n have_v so_o possess_v the_o king_n with_o a_o aversion_n to_o this_o marriage_n 1505._o that_o on_o the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o prince_n be_v of_o age_n he_o by_o his_o father_n command_n lay_v on_o he_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n and_o other_o make_v a_o protestation_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o fox_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n before_o a_o public_a notary_n morison_n and_o read_v it_o himself_o by_o which_o he_o declare_v that_o whereas_o he_o be_v under_o age_n be_v marry_v to_o the_o princess_n katherine_n yet_o now_o come_v to_o be_v of_o age_n he_o do_v not_o confirm_v that_o marriage_n but_o retract_v and_o annul_v it_o and_o will_v not_o proceed_v in_o it_o but_o intend_v in_o full_a form_n of_o law_n to_o void_a it_o and_o break_v it_o off_o which_o he_o declare_v he_o do_v free_o and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n it_o thus_o it_o stand_v during_o his_o father_n life_n who_o continue_v to_o the_o last_o to_o be_v against_o it_o and_o when_o he_o be_v just_a die_v he_o charge_v his_o son_n to_o break_v it_o off_o though_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o no_o consideration_n of_o religion_n may_v work_v so_o much_o on_o he_o as_o the_o apprehension_n he_o have_v of_o the_o trouble_n that_o may_v follow_v on_o a_o controvert_v title_n to_o the_o crown_n dies_fw-la of_o which_o the_o war_n between_o the_o house_n of_o york_n and_o lancaster_n have_v give_v a_o fresh_a and_o sad_a demonstration_n the_o king_n be_v dead_a one_o of_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o come_v under_o consultation_n be_v that_o the_o young_a king_n must_v either_o break_v his_o marriage_n total_o 1516._o or_o conclude_v it_o argument_n be_v bring_v on_o both_o hand_n but_o those_o for_o it_o prevail_v most_o with_o the_o king_n so_o six_o week_n after_o he_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n he_o be_v marry_v again_o public_o and_o soon_o after_o they_o be_v both_o crown_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o year_n she_o make_v he_o a_o very_a acceptable_a new-year_n gift_n of_o a_o son_n but_o he_o die_v in_o the_o febru●ry_n thereafter_o she_o miscarry_v often_o and_o a_o other_o son_n die_v soon_o after_o he_o be_v bear_v only_o the_o lady_n mary_n live_v to_o a_o perfect_a age._n in_o this_o state_n be_v the_o king_n family_n when_o the_o queen_n le●t_v bear_v more_o child_n and_o contract_v some_o disease_n that_o make_v her_o person_n unacceptable_a to_o he_o but_o be_v as_o to_o her_o other_o quality_n a_o virtuous_a and_o grave_a princess_n much_o esteem_v and_o belove_v both_o of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o whole_a nation_n the_o king_n be_v out_o of_o hope_n of_o more_o child_n declare_v his_o daughter_n princess_n of_o wales_n and_o send_v she_o to_o ludlow_n to_o hold_v her_o court_n there_o and_o project_v divers_a match_n for_o she_o the_o first_o be_v with_o the_o dolphin_n which_o be_v agree_v to_o between_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o he_o the_o 9th_o of_o novemb_n 1518._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o treaty_n yet_o extant_a but_o this_o be_v break_v afterward_o upon_o the_o king_n confederate_v with_o the_o emperor_n against_o france_n 1●27_n and_o a_o new_a match_n agree_v and_o swear_v to_o between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n at_o windsor_n the_o 22_o of_o june_n 1522._o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a in_o person_n foreigner_n this_o be_v afterward_o neglect_v and_o break_v by_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o cortes_n and_o state_n as_o be_v former_o relate_v there_o follow_v some_o overture_n of_o a_o marriage_n with_o scotland_n but_o those_o also_o vanish_v and_o there_o be_v a_o second_o treaty_n begin_v with_o france_n the_o king_n offer_v his_o daughter_n to_o francis_n himself_o which_o he_o glad_o accept_v a_o match_n be_v treat_v and_o on_o the_o last_o of_o april_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o lady_n mary_n shall_v be_v give_v in_o marriage_n either_o to_o francis_n himself_o or_o to_o his_o second_o son_n the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o that_o alternative_a be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o two_o king_n at_o a_o interview_n that_o be_v to_o be_v between_o they_o soon_o after_o at_o calais_n with_o forfeiture_n on_o both_o side_n if_o the_o match_n go_v not_o on_o but_o while_o this_o be_v in_o agitation_n the_o bishop_n of_o tarbe_n the_o french_a ambassador_n make_v a_o a_o great_a demur_n about_o the_o princess_n mary_n be_v illegitimate_a as_o beget_v in_o a_o marriage_n that_o be_v contract_v against_o a_o divine_a precept_n with_o which_o no_o humane_a authority_n can_v dispense_v how_o far_o this_o be_v secret_o concert_v between_o the_o french_a court_n and_o we_o or_o between_o the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o ambassador_n be_v not_o know_v it_o be_v surmise_v that_o the_o king_n or_o the_o cardinal_n set_v on_o the_o french_a to_o make_v this_o exception_n public_o that_o so_o the_o king_n may_v have_v a_o better_a colour_n to_o justify_v his_o suit_n of_o divorce_n since_o other_o prince_n be_v already_o question_v it_o for_o if_o upon_o a_o marriage_n propose_v of_o such_o infinite_a advantage_n to_o france_n as_o that_o will_v be_v with_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n they_o nevertheless_o make_v exception_n and_o proceed_v but_o cold_o in_o it_o it_o be_v very_o reasonable_a to_o expect_v that_o after_o the_o king_n death_n other_o pretender_n will_v have_v dispute_v her_o title_n in_o another_o manner_n to_o some_o it_o seem_v strange_a that_o the_o king_n do_v offer_v his_o daughter_n to_o such_o great_a prince_n as_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o who_o if_o england_n have_v fall_v in_o she_o right_o it_o must_v have_v be_v a_o province_n for_o though_o in_o the_o last_o treaty_n with_o france_n she_o be_v offer_v either_o to_o the_o king_n or_o his_o second_o son_n by_o which_o either_o the_o child_n which_o the_o king_n may_v have_v by_o she_o or_o the_o child_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n shall_v have_v be_v heir_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o thereby_o it_o will_v still_o have_v continue_v divide_v from_o france_n yet_o this_o be_v full_a of_o hazard_n for_o if_o the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n by_o his_o brother_n death_n shall_v become_v king_n of_o france_n as_o it_o afterward_o fall_v out_o or_o if_o the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v be_v once_o possess_v of_o england_n then_o according_a to_o the_o maxim_n of_o the_o french_a government_n that_o whatever_o their_o king_n acquire_v he_o hold_v it_o in_o the_o right_n of_o his_o crown_n england_n be_v still_o to_o be_v a_o province_n to_o france_n unless_o they_o free_v themselves_o by_o arms._n other_o judge_v that_o the_o
time_n for_o silence_v the_o noise_n that_o her_o be_v at_o court_n during_o the_o process_n will_v have_v occasion_v it_o be_v tay_v that_o she_o take_v her_o dismission_n so_o ill_o that_o she_o resolve_v never_o again_o so_o return_v and_o that_o she_o be_v very_o hardly_o bring_v to_o it_o afterward_o not_o without_o threaten_n from_o her_o father_n but_o of_o that_o nothing_o appear_v to_o i_o only_o this_o i_o find_v that_o all_o her_o former_a kindness_n to_o the_o cardinal_n be_v now_o turn_v to_o enmity_n so_o that_o she_o be_v not_o want_v in_o her_o endeavour_n to_o pull_v he_o down_o but_o the_o king_n be_v reconcile_v to_o she_o and_o as_o it_o be_v ordinary_a after_o some_o intermission_n and_o disorder_n between_o lover_n his_o affection_n increase_a he_o be_v cast_v about_o for_o overture_n how_o to_o compass_v what_o he_o so_o earnest_o desire_v sometime_o he_o think_v of_o procure_v a_o new_a commission_n but_o that_o be_v not_o advisable_v for_o af●er_v a_o long_a dependence_n it_o may_v end_v as_o the_o former_a have_v do_v then_o he_o think_v of_o break_v off_o with_o the_o pope_n but_o there_o be_v great_a danger_n in_o that_o for_o beside_o that_o in_o his_o own_o persuasion_n he_o adhere_v to_o all_o the_o most_o important_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n his_o subject_n be_v so_o addict_v to_o it_o that_o any_o such_o a_o change_n can_v not_o but_o seem_v full_a of_o hazard_n sometime_o he_o incline_v to_o confederate_n himself_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n for_o now_o there_o be_v no_o divide_v of_o they_o till_o he_o shall_v thereby_o bring_v the_o emperor_n to_o yield_v to_o his_o desire_n but_o that_o be_v against_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o emperor_n have_v already_o proceed_v so_o far_o in_o his_o opposition_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v easy_o bring_v about_o while_o his_o thought_n be_v thus_o divide_v a_o new_a proposition_n be_v make_v to_o he_o that_o seem_v the_o most_o reasonable_a and_o feasible_a of_o they_o all_o divorce_n there_o be_v one_o dr._n cranmer_n who_o have_v be_v a_o fellow_n of_o jesus_n college_n in_o cambridge_n but_o have_v marry_v forfeit_v his_o fellowship_n yet_o continue_v his_o study_n and_o be_v a_o reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o buckingham_n college_n his_o wife_n die_v he_o be_v again_o choose_v fellow_n of_o jesus_n college_n and_o be_v much_o esteem_v in_o the_o university_n for_o his_o learning_n which_o appear_v very_o eminent_o on_o all_o public_a occasion_n but_o he_o be_v a_o man_n that_o neither_o court_v preferment_n nor_o do_v willing_o accept_v of_o it_o when_o offer_v and_o therefore_o though_o he_o be_v invite_v to_o be_v a_o reader_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o cardinal_n college_n at_o oxford_n he_o decline_v it_o he_o be_v at_o this_o time_n force_v to_o fly_v out_o of_o cambridge_n from_o a_o plague_n that_o be_v there_o and_o have_v the_o son_n of_o one_o mr._n cressy_a of_o waltham-cross_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n he_o go_v with_o his_o pupil_n to_o their_o father_n house_n at_o waltham_n there_o he_o be_v when_o the_o king_n return_v from_o his_o progress_n who_o take_v waltham_n in_o his_o way_n and_o lay_v a_o night_n there_o the_o harbinger_n have_v appoint_v gardiner_n and_o fox_n the_o king_n secretary_n and_o almoner_n to_o lie_v at_o mr._n cressy_n house_n it_o so_o happen_v that_o cranmer_n be_v with_o they_o at_o supper_n the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o england_n be_v then_o about_o the_o divorce_n these_o two_o courtier_n know_v cranmer_n learn_v and_o solid_a judgement_n entertain_v he_o with_o it_o and_o desire_v to_o hear_v his_o opinion_n concern_v it_o he_o modest_o decline_v it_o but_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o judge_v it_o will_v be_v a_o short_a and_o safe_a way_n once_o to_o clear_v it_o well_o if_o the_o marriage_n be_v unlawful_a in_o itself_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o divine_a precept_n for_o if_o that_o be_v prove_v than_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o make_v that_o lawful_a which_o god_n have_v declae_v to_o be_v unlawful_a therefore_o he_o think_v that_o instead_o of_o a_o long_a fruitless_a negotiation_n at_o rome_n it_o be_v better_a to_o consult_v all_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o the_o university_n of_o christendom_n for_o if_o they_o once_o declare_v it_o in_o the_o king_n favour_n than_o the_o pope_n must_v needs_o give_v judgement_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bull_n be_v of_o itself_o null_n and_o void_a the_o marriage_n will_v be_v find_v sinful_a notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n this_o seem_v a_o very_a good_a motion_n which_o they_o resolve_v to_o offer_v to_o the_o king_n so_o next_o night_n when_o he_o come_v to_o greenwich_n they_o propose_v it_o to_o he_o but_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o gardiner_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o make_v it_o pass_v for_o their_o own_o contrivance_n but_o fox_n who_o be_v of_o a_o more_o ingenuous_a nature_n tell_v the_o king_n from_o who_o they_o have_v it_o king_n he_o be_v much_o affect_v with_o it_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o hear_v it_o and_o say_v have_v he_o know_v it_o soon_o it_o will_v have_v save_v he_o a_o vast_a expense_n and_o much_o trouble_n and_o will_v needs_o have_v cranmer_n send_v for_o to_o court_n say_v in_o his_o coarse_a way_n of_o speak_v that_o he_o have_v the_o sow_n by_o the_o right_a ear_n so_o he_o be_v send_v for_o to_o court_n and_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o king_n he_o carry_v himself_o so_o that_o the_o king_n conceive_v a_o high_a opinion_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o candour_n which_o he_o preserve_v to_o his_o death_n and_o still_o pay_v a_o respect_n to_o he_o beyond_o all_o the_o other_o churchman_n that_o be_v about_o he_o and_o though_o he_o make_v more_o use_n of_o gardener_n in_o his_o business_n who_o he_o find_v a_o man_n of_o great_a dexterity_n and_o cunning_a yet_o he_o never_o have_v any_o respect_n for_o he_o but_o for_o cranmer_n though_o the_o king_n know_v that_o in_o many_o thing_n he_o differ_v from_o he_o yet_o for_o all_o his_o be_v so_o impatient_a of_o contradiction_n he_o always_o reverence_v he_o effigy_n thomae_fw-la wolsei_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la natus_fw-la 1471_o mar●_n consecrat_n epl●●_n colu●_n 1514_o mar●_n 26_o translatus_fw-la ad_fw-la sedet_fw-la e●oracensen_n nou._n 6_o cardinalis_fw-la 〈…〉_z 1515_o sept._n 7._o obyt_fw-la 1530_o nou._n 26_o pri●●●d_n for_o ri●_n chiswell_n at_o the_o rose_n and_o crown_n in_o st_n paul_n church_n yard_n but_o as_o he_o have_v carry_v his_o greatness_n with_o most_o extravagant_a pride_n temper_n so_o he_o be_v no_o less_o base_o cast_v down_o with_o his_o misfortune_n and_o have_v no_o ballast_n within_o himself_o but_o be_v whole_o guide_v by_o thing_n without_o he_o he_o be_v lift_v up_o or_o cast_v down_o as_o the_o scale_n of_o fortune_n turn_v yet_o his_o enemy_n have_v go_v too_o far_o ever_o to_o suffer_v a_o man_n of_o his_o part_n or_o temper_n to_o return_v to_o favour_n and_o therefore_o they_o so_o order_v it_o that_o a_o high_a charge_n of_o many_o article_n be_v bring_v against_o he_o into_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n in_o the_o parliament_n that_o sit_v in_o november_n follow_v and_o it_o pass_v there_o where_o he_o have_v but_o few_o friend_n and_o many_o and_o great_a enemy_n but_o when_o the_o charge_n be_v send_v down_o to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o it_o be_v so_o manage_v by_o the_o industry_n of_o cromwell_n who_o have_v be_v his_o servant_n that_o it_o come_v to_o nothing_o the_o head_n of_o it_o have_v be_v oft_o print_v therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o repeat_v they_o they_o relate_v chief_o to_o his_o legantine_n power_n contrary_a to_o law_n to_o his_o insolence_n and_o ambition_n his_o lewd_a life_n and_o ●ther_o thing_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o defame_v as_o well_o as_o destroy_v he_o all_o these_o thing_n do_v so_o sink_v his_o proud_a mind_n that_o a_o deep_a melancholy_n overcome_v his_o spirit_n the_o king_n send_v he_o frequent_a assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n which_o he_o receive_v with_o extravagant_a transport_n of_o joy_n he_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n in_o the_o dirt_n before_o the_o messenger_n that_o bring_v one_o of_o they_o and_o hold_v up_o his_o hand_n for_o joy_n which_o show_v how_o mean_a a_o soul_n he_o have_v and_o that_o as_o himself_o afterward_o acknowledge_v he_o prefer_v the_o king_n favour_n to_o god_n almighty_n but_o the_o king_n find_v they_o take_v little_a notice_n of_o he_o at_o rome_n the_o emperor_n hate_v he_o and_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o love_v he_o look_v on_o he_o as_o one_o that_o be_v almost_o equal_a to_o himself_o in_o power_n and_o though_o they_o do_v not_o love_v the_o precedent_n to_o have_v a_o cardinal_n so_o use_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o much_o trouble_v
st._n frat●em_fw-la austin_n who_o do_v plain_o deliver_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n about_o the_o obligation_n of_o those_o law_n and_o answer_v the_o objection_n that_o be_v make_v either_o from_o abraam_n marry_v his_o sister_n or_o from_o iacob_n marry_v two_o sister_n or_o the_o law_n in_o deuteronomy_n for_o the_o brother_n marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n if_o he_o die_v without_o child_n they_o observe_v that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v also_o teach_v by_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n in_o the_o latter_a age_n d_o anselm_n hold_v it_o and_o plead_v much_o for_o marry_v in_o remote_a degree_n and_o answer_v the_o objection_n from_o the_o decision_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o zelophehad_n leu._n hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la radulphus_fw-la flaviacenfis_n and_o rupertus_n tuitiensis_n do_v agree_v that_o these_o precept_n be_v moral_a and_o of_o perpetual_a obligation_n as_o also_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sto._n victore_fw-la sag._n hildebert_n bishop_n of_o man_n be_v consult_v in_o a_o case_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o what_o be_v now_o controvert_v 2._o plain_o determine_v that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n and_o by_o many_o authority_n show_v that_o by_o no_o mean_n it_o can_v be_v allow_v and_o 240._o ivo_n carnotensis_n be_v desire_v to_o give_v his_o opinion_n in_o a_o case_n of_o the_o same_o circumstance●_n of_o a_o king_n marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n say_z such_o a_o marriage_n be_v null_a as_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n till_o he_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n since_o there_o be_v no_o dispence_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o no_o sacrifice_n can_v be_v offer_v for_o those_o that_o continue_v willing_o in_o sin_n passage_n also_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o epistle_n from_o these_o doctor_n and_o father_n the_o inquiry_n descend_v to_o the_o schoolman_n who_o have_v with_o more_o niceness_n and_o subtlety_n examine_v thing_n schoolman_n they_o do_v all_o agree_v in_o assert_v the_o obligation_n of_o these_o levitical_a prohibition_n thomas_n aquinas_n do_v it_o in_o many_o place_n 4._o and_o confirm_v it_o with_o many_o argument_n altisiodorensis_n say_v they_o be_v moral_a law_n and_o part_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la be_v of_o the_o ●ame_n mind_n and_o say_v that_o a_o man_n marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n be_v a_o dispensation_n grant_v by_o god_n but_o can_v not_o be_v now_o allow_v because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n st._n antonine_n of_o florence_n joannes_n the_o turre_n cremata_fw-la joannes_n de_fw-fr tabia_n jacobus_n de_fw-fr lausania_n and_o astexanus_n be_v also_o cite_v for_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o those_o who_o write_v against_o wickliff_n namely_o 4._o wydeford_n 4._o cotton_n and_o 4._o waldensis_n charge_v he_o with_o heresy_n for_o deny_v that_o those_o prohibition_n do_v oblige_v christian_n and_o assert_v that_o they_o be_v moral_a law_n which_o oblige_v all_o mankind_n and_o the_o book_n of_o waldensis_n be_v approve_v by_o p._n martin_n the_o first_o there_o be_v also_o many_o quotation_n bring_v out_o of_o petrus_n de_fw-fr tarantasia_n durandus_fw-la stephanus_n brulifer_n richardus_fw-la de_fw-la media_fw-la villa_n guido_n briancon_n gerson_n paulus_n ritius_fw-la and_o many_o other_o to_o confirm_v the_o same_o opinion_n who_o do_v all_o unanimous_o assert_v that_o those_o law_n in_o leviticus_n be_v part_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o oblige_v all_o mankind_n and_o that_o marriage_n contract_v in_o these_o degree_n be_v null_n and_o void_a all_o the_o canonist_n be_v also_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n joannes_n andreas_n joannes_n de_fw-fr imola_n abbas_n panormitanus_fw-la canonist_n mattheus_fw-la neru_n vincentius_n innocentius_n and_o ostiensis_n all_o conclude_v that_o these_o law_n be_v still_o in_o force_n and_o can_v not_o be_v dispense_v with_o there_o be_v also_o a_o great_a deal_n allege_v to_o prove_v that_o a_o marriage_n be_v complete_v by_o the_o marriage-contract_n consent_n though_o it_o be_v never_o consummate_v many_o authority_n be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o adonijah_n can_v not_o marry_v abishag_fw-mi because_o she_o be_v his_o father_n wife_n though_o never_o know_v by_o he_o and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n a_o woman_n espouse_v to_o a_o man_n if_o she_o admit_v another_o to_o her_o bed_n be_v to_o be_v stone_v as_o a_o adulteress_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o validity_n of_o marriage_n be_v from_o the_o mutual_a covenant_n and_o though_o joseph_n never_o know_v the_o bless_a virgin_n yet_o he_o be_v so_o much_o her_o husband_n by_o the_o espousal_n that_o he_o can_v not_o put_v she_o away_o but_o by_o a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n and_o be_v afterward_o call_v her_o husband_n and_o christ_n father_n affinity_n have_v be_v also_o define_v by_o all_o writer_n a_o relation_n arise_v out_o of_o marriage_n and_o since_o marriage_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n its_o essence_n can_v only_o consist_v in_o the_o contract_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o man_n in_o order_n have_v the_o character_n though_o he_o never_o consecrate_a any_o sacrament_n so_o marriage_n be_v complete_a though_o its_o effect_n never_o follow_v and_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o canonist_n have_v only_o bring_v in_o the_o consummation_n of_o marriage_n as_o essential_a to_o it_o by_o ecclesiastical_a law_n but_o that_o as_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v perfect_o marry_v before_o they_o know_v one_o another_o so_o marriage_n be_v complete_a upon_o the_o contract_n and_o what_o follow_v be_v only_o a_o effect_n do_v in_o the_o right_n of_o the_o marriage_n and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o filthy_a stuff_n bring_v together_o of_o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o the_o canonist_n concern_v consummation_n to_o what_o degree_n it_o must_v go_v to_o show_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o marriage_n con●ract_n which_o in_o modesty_n be_v suppress_v both_o hildebert_n of_o man_n ivo_n carnotensis_n and_o hugo_n de_fw-fr sto._n victore_fw-la have_v deliver_v this_o opinion_n and_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o st._n chrysostome_n ambrose_n austin_n and_o isidore_n pope_n nicolas_n and_o the_o council_n of_o tribur_n define_v that_o marriage_n be_v complete_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o the_o benediction_n from_o all_o which_o they_o conclude_v that_o although_o it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v that_o prince_n arthur_n know_v the_o queen_n marriage_n yet_o that_o she_o be_v once_o lawful_o marry_v to_o he_o the_o king_n can_v not_o afterward_o marry_v she_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o violent_a presumption_n be_v sufficient_a in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o canonist_n to_o prove_v consummation_n formal_n proof_n can_v not_o be_v expect_v and_o for_o person_n that_o be_v of_o age_n and_o in_o good_a health_n to_o be_v in_o bed_n together_o be_v in_o all_o trial_n about_o consummation_n all_o that_o the_o cononist_n seek_v for_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o in_o this_o case_n for_o it_o appear_v that_o upon_o her_o husband_n death_n she_o be_v keep_v with_o great_a care_n by_o some_o lady_n who_o do_v think_v she_o with_o child_n and_o she_o never_o say_v any_o thing_n against_o it_o and_o in_o the_o petition_n offer_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o her_o name_n repeat_v in_o the_o bull_n that_o be_v procure_v for_o the_o second_o marriage_n it_o be_v say_v she_o be_v perhaps_o know_v by_o prince_n arthur_n and_o in_o the_o breve_fw-la it_o be_v plain_o say_v she_o be_v know_v by_o prince_n arthur_n and_o though_o the_o queen_n offer_v to_o purge_v herself_o by_o oath_n that_o prince_n arthur_n never_o know_v she_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o many_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o canon-law_n that_o a_o party_n oath_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v when_o there_o be_v violent_a presumption_n to_o the_o contrary_n as_o for_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n do_v general_o raise_v the_o pope_n power_n very_o high_a and_o stretch_v it_o as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a force_n yet_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o can_v not_o reach_v the_o king_n case_n upon_o this_o receive_a maxim_n that_o only_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v be_v dispense_v with_o by_o he_o but_o that_o law_n of_o god_n be_v above_o he_o and_o that_o he_o can_v dispense_v with_o they_o in_o any_o case_n 3_o this_o aquinas_n deliver_v in_o many_o place_n of_o his_o work_n petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la say_v the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v with_o marriage_n in_o these_o degree_n because_o it_o be_v against_o nature_n but_o joannes_n de_fw-fr turre_n cremata_fw-la report_v a_o singular_a case_n which_o fall_v out_o when_o he_o be_v a_o
modena_n and_o reggio_n from_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n to_o which_o he_o pretend_v as_o be_v fief_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o the_o emperor_n have_v engage_v by_o the_o former_a treatyto_n restore_v they_o to_o he_o but_o now_o that_o the_o pope_n pretension_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o some_o judge_n delegated_a by_o the_o emperor_n they_o determine_v against_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o duke_n of_o ferrara_n which_o so_o disgust_v the_o pope_n that_o he_o fall_v total_o from_o the_o emperor_n and_o do_v unite_v with_o the_o king_n of_o france_n a_o match_n be_v also_o project_v between_o the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n afterward_o henry_n the_o second_o and_o his_o niece_n catharine_n de_fw-fr medici_n which_o do_v work_n much_o on_o the_o pope_n ambition_n to_o have_v his_o family_n ally_v to_o so_o mighty_a a_o monarch_n so_o that_o now_o he_o become_v whole_o french_a the_o french_a king_n be_v also_o on_o account_n of_o this_o marriage_n orleans_n to_o resign_v all_o the_o pretension_n he_o have_v to_o any_o territory_n in_o italy_n to_o his_o young_a son_n which_o as_o it_o will_v give_v less-umbrage_n to_o the_o other_o prince_n of_o italy_n who_o like_v rather_o to_o have_v a_o king_n be_v young_a son_n among_o they_o than_o either_o the_o emperor_n or_o the_o french_a king_n so_o the_o pope_n be_v wonderful_o please_v to_o raise_v another_o great_a prince_n in_o italy_n out_o of_o his_o own_o family_n on_o these_o ground_n be_v the_o match_n at_o this_o time_n design_v which_o afterward_o take_v effect_n but_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o by_o the_o dolphin_n death_n the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n become_v king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o queen_n make_v the_o great_a figure_n that_o any_o queen_n of_o france_n have_v do_v for_o many_o age_n this_o change_n in_o the_o pope_n mind_n may_v have_v produce_v another_o in_o the_o king_n affair_n if_o he_o have_v not_o already_o go_v so_o far_o that_o he_o be_v less_o in_o fear_n of_o the_o pope_n than_o former_o he_o find_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o clergy_n be_v so_o low_a that_o to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o the_o contempt_n and_o fury_n of_o the_o people_n they_o be_v force_v to_o depend_v whole_o on_o the_o crown_n for_o lutheranisme_n be_v then_o make_v a_o great_a progress_n in_o england_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o here_o be_v resolve_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o it_o in_o those_o year_n that_o fall_v within_o this_o time_n but_o what_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o new_a preacher_n what_o by_o the_o scandal_n cast_v on_o the_o clergy_n they_o be_v all_o at_o the_o king_n mercy_n so_o he_o do_v not_o fear_n much_o from_o they_o especial_o in_o the_o southern_a part_n which_o be_v the_o rich_a and_o best_a people_v therefore_o the_o king_n go_v on_o resolute_o the_o pope_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n be_v in_o great_a perplexity_n he_o see_v england_n ready_a to_o be_v lose_v and_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v to_o rescue_v or_o preserve_v it_o if_o he_o give_v way_n to_o what_o be_v late_o do_v in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o praemunire_n he_o must_v thereby_o lose_v the_o great_a advantage_n he_o draw_v from_o that_o nation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o after_o the_o king_n have_v go_v so_o far_o he_o will_v undo_v what_o be_v do_v the_o emperor_n be_v more_o remiss_a in_o prosecute_a the_o queen_n appeal_n at_o rome_n for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o turk_n with_o a_o most_o numerous_a and_o powerful_a army_n be_v make_v a_o impression_n on_o hungary_n turk_n which_o to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n be_v impute_v to_o his_o council_n and_o present_n at_o the_o port_n and_o all_o the_o emperor_n thought_n be_v take_v up_o with_o this_o therefore_o as_o he_o give_v the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n some_o present_a satisfaction_n in_o religion_n and_o other_o matter_n so_o he_o send_v over_o to_o england_n and_o desire_v the_o king_n assistance_n against_o that_o vast_a army_n of_o 300000_o man_n that_o be_v fall_v in_o upon_o christendom_n to_o this_o the_o king_n make_v a_o general_a answer_n that_o give_v some_o hope_n of_o assist_v he_o but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o protestant_a prince_n resolve_v to_o draw_v some_o advantage_n from_o that_o conjuncture_n of_o affair_n and_o be_v court_v by_o the_o french_a king_n enter_v into_o a_o league_n with_o he_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o to_o make_v this_o firm_a the_o king_n be_v invite_v by_o the_o french_a king_n to_o join_v in_o it_o to_o which_o he_o consent_v and_o send_v over_o to_o france_n a_o sum_n of_o money_n to_o be_v employ_v ●or_a the_o safety_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o this_o provoke_v the_o emperor_n to_o renew_v his_o endeavour_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o prosecute_a the_o queen_n appeal_n the_o french_a king_n encourage_v the_o king_n to_o go_v on_o with_o his_o divorce_n that_o he_o may_v total_o alienate_v he_o from_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a writer_n also_o add_v another_o consideration_n which_o seem_v unworthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o king_n that_o he_o himself_o be_v at_o that_o time_n so_o public_a a_o courtier_n of_o lady_n be_v not_o ill_o please_v to_o set_v forward_o a_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n but_o though_o prince_n allow_v themselves_o their_o pleasure_n yet_o they_o seldom_o govern_v their_o affair_n by_o such_o maxim_n 1532._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o year_n a_o new_a session_n of_o parliament_n be_v hold_v in_o which_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o go_v on_o to_o complain_v of_o many_o other_o grievance_n they_o lie_v under_o from_o the_o clergy_n court_n which_o they_o put_v in_o a_o writing_n and_o present_v it_o to_o the_o king_n in_o it_o they_o complain_v of_o the_o proceed_n in_o the_o spiritual_a court_n and_o especial_o their_o call_a man_n before_o they_o ex_fw-la officio_fw-la and_o lay_v article_n to_o their_o charge_n without_o any_o accuser_n and_o then_o admit_v no_o purgation_n but_o cause_v the_o party_n accuse_v either_o to_o abjure_v hall_n or_o to_o be_v burn_v which_o they_o find_v very_o grievous_a and_o intolerable_a this_o be_v occasion_v by_o some_o violent_a proceed_n against_o some_o repute_a heretic_n of_o which_o a_o account_n shall_v be_v give_v afterward_o but_o those_o complaint_n be_v stifle_v and_o great_a misunderstanding_n arise_v between_o the_o king_n and_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o upon_o this_o follow_a occasion_n ward_n there_o be_v a_o common_a practice_n in_o england_n of_o man_n make_v such_o setlement_n of_o their_o estate_n by_o their_o last_o will_n or_o other_o deed_n that_o the_o king_n and_o some_o great_a lord_n be_v thereby_o defraud_v of_o the_o advantage_n they_o make_v by_o ward_n marriage_n and_o primer_n season_n for_o regulate_v which_o a_o bill_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n and_o assent_v to_o there_o but_o when_o it_o be_v send_v down_o to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o it_o be_v reject_v by_o they_o and_o they_o will_v neither_o pass_v the_o bill_n nor_o any_o other_o qualification_n of_o that_o abuse_n this_o give_v the_o king_n great_a offence_n and_o the_o house_n when_o they_o address_v to_o he_o about_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o clergy_n dissolve_v also_o pray_v that_o he_o will_v consider_v what_o cost_n charge_v and_o pain_n they_o have_v be_v at_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o that_o it_o will_v please_v his_o grace_n of_o his_o princely_a benignity_n to_o dissolve_v his_o court_n of_o parliament_n 1532._o and_o that_o his_o subject_n may_v return_v into_o their_o country_n to_o which_o the_o king_n answer_v that_o for_o their_o complaint_n of_o the_o clergy_n he_o must_v hear_v they_o also_o before_o he_o can_v give_v judgement_n since_o in_o justice_n he_o ought_v to_o hear_v both_o party_n but_o that_o their_o desire_v the_o redress_n of_o such_o abuse_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o their_o petition_n for_o if_o the_o parliament_n be_v dissolve_v answer_n how_o can_v those_o thing_n they_o complain_v of_o be_v amend_v and_o as_o they_o complain_v of_o their_o long_a attendance_n so_o the_o king_n have_v stay_v as_o long_o as_o they_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v still_o patience_n and_o so_o they_o must_v have_v otherwise_o their_o grievance_n will_v be_v without_o redress_n but_o he_o do_v expostulate_v severe_o upon_o their_o reject_v the_o bill_n about_o deed_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n he_o ●aid_v he_o have_v offer_v they_o a_o great_a mitigation_n of_o what_o by_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n he_o may_v pretend_v to_o and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o he_o will_v
and_o therefore_o they_o be_v everywhere_o meeting_n together_o and_o consult_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v for_o suppress_v heresy_n and_o preserve_v the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o zeal_n be_v much_o inflame_v by_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n who_o clear_o see_v the_o act_n of_o parliament_n friar_n be_v so_o level_v at_o their_o exemption_n and_o immunity_n that_o they_o be_v now_o like_a to_o be_v at_o the_o king_n mercy_n they_o be_v no_o more_o to_o plead_v their_o bull_n nor_o claim_v any_o privilege_n further_o than_o it_o please_v the_o king_n to_o allow_v they_o no_o new_a saint_n from_o rome_n can_v draw_v more_o riches_n or_o honour_n to_o their_o order_n privilege_n and_o indulgence_n be_v out_o of_o door_n so_o that_o the_o art_n of_o draw_v in_o the_o people_n to_o enrich_v their_o church_n and_o house_n be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o they_o have_v also_o secret_a intimation_n that_o the_o king_n and_o the_o courtier_n have_v a_o eye_n on_o their_o land_n and_o they_o give_v themselves_o for_o lose_v if_o they_o can_v not_o so_o embroyl_n the_o king_n affair_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o adventure_v on_o so_o invidious_a a_o thing_n therefore_o both_o in_o confession_n and_o conference_n they_o infuse_v into_o the_o people_n a_o dislike_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n which_o though_o for_o some_o time_n it_o do_v not_o break_v out_o into_o a_o open_a rebellion_n yet_o the_o humour_n still_o ferment_v and_o people_n only_o wait_v for_o a_o opportunity_n so_o that_o if_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o be_v otherwise_o distract_v he_o may_v have_v make_v war_n upon_o the_o king_n with_o great_a advantage_n for_o many_o of_o his_o discontent_a subject_n will_v have_v join_v with_o the_o enemy_n but_o the_o king_n do_v so_o dextrous_o manage_v his_o league_n with_o the_o french_a king_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o the_o emperor_n can_v never_o make_v any_o impression_n on_o his_o dominion_n severity_n but_o those_o factious_a spirit_n see_v nothing_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o any_o foreign_a power_n can_v not_o contain_v themselves_o but_o break_v out_o into_o open_a rebellion_n and_o this_o provoke_v the_o king_n to_o great_a severity_n his_o spirit_n be_v so_o fret_v by_o the_o trick_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v put_v on_o he_o and_o by_o the_o ingratitude_n and_o seditious_a practice_n of_o reginald_n pool_n that_o he_o thereby_o lose_v much_o of_o his_o former_a temper_n and_o patience_n and_o be_v too_o ready_a upon_o slight_a ground_n to_o bring_v his_o subject_n to_o the_o bar._n where_o though_o the_o matter_n be_v always_o so_o order_v that_o according_a to_o law_n they_o be_v indict_v and_o judge_v yet_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n border_v sometime_o on_o rigour_n and_o cruelty_n he_o come_v to_o be_v call_v a_o cruel_a tyrant_n nor_o do_v his_o severity_n lie_v only_o on_o one_o side_n but_o be_v addict_v to_o some_o tenet_n of_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o impatient_a of_o contradiction_n or_o perhaps_o blow_v up_o either_o with_o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o new_a title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o with_o the_o praise_n which_o flatterer_n bestow_v on_o he_o he_o think_v all_o person_n be_v bind_v to_o regulate_v their_o belief_n by_o he_o dictate_v which_o make_v he_o prosecute_v protestant_n as_o well_o as_o proceed_v against_o papist_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o cruelty_n be_v natural_a to_o he_o for_o in_o twenty_o five_o year_n reign_v none_o have_v suffer_v for_o any_o crime_n against_o the_o state_n but_o pool_n earl_n of_o suffolk_n and_o stafford_z duke_z of_o buckingham_z the_o former_a he_o prosecute_v in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n last_o command_v at_o his_o death_n his_o severity_n to_o the_o other_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o cardinal_n malice_n the_o proceed_n be_v also_o legal_a and_o the_o duke_n of_o buckingham_n have_v by_o the_o knavery_n of_o a_o priest_n to_o who_o he_o give_v great_a credit_n be_v make_v believe_v he_o have_v a_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o practice_n of_o that_o nature_n touch_v prince_n so_o near_o that_o no_o wonder_n the_o law_n be_v execute_v in_o such_o a_o case_n this_o show_n that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o very_o jealous_a nor_o desirous_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o subject_n but_o though_o he_o always_o proceed_v upon_o law_n yet_o in_o the_o last_o ten_o year_n of_o his_o life_n many_o instance_n of_o severity_n occur_v for_o which_o he_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v pity_v than_o either_o imitate_v or_o sharp_o censure_v the_o former_a book_n be_v full_a of_o intrigue_n and_o foreign_a transaction_n the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v a_o account_n of_o a_o tedious_a negotiation_n with_o the_o subtle_a and_o most_o refine_a court_n in_o christendom_n in_o all_o the_o art_n of_o humane_a policy_n but_o now_o my_o work_n be_v confine_v to_o this_o nation_n and_o except_o in_o short_a touch_n by_o the_o way_n i_o shall_v meddle_v no_o further_o with_o the_o mystery_n of_o state_n but_o shall_v give_v as_o clear_v a_o account_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o relate_v to_o religion_n and_o reformation_n as_o i_o can_v possible_o recover_v the_o suppression_n of_o monastery_n the_o advance_n and_o declension_n of_o reformation_n and_o the_o proceed_n against_o those_o who_o adhere_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v the_o chief_a subject_n of_o this_o book_n the_o two_o former_a shall_v be_v open_v in_o the_o series_n of_o time_n as_o they_o be_v transact_v but_o the_o last_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n that_o it_o may_v be_v present_v in_o one_o full_a view_n after_o the_o parliament_n have_v end_v their_o business_n supremacy_n the_o bishop_n do_v all_o renew_v their_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o swear_v also_o to_o maintain_v his_o supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n though_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o law_n for_o the_o require_v of_o any_o such_o oath_n the_o first_o act_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n be_v his_o name_n cromwell_n vicar-general_n and_o general_a visitor_n of_o all_o the_o monastery_n and_o other_o privilege_a place_n this_o be_v common_o confound_v with_o his_o follow_a dignity_n of_o lord_n vicegerent_a in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o they_o be_v two_o different_a place_n and_o hold_v by_o different_a commission_n by_o the_o one_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o bishop_n nor_o have_v he_o any_o precedence_n but_o the_o other_o as_o it_o give_v he_o the_o precedence_n next_o the_o royal_a family_n so_o it_o clothe_v he_o with_o a_o complete_a delegation_n of_o the_o king_n whole_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n for_o two_o year_n he_o be_v only_o vicar-general_n but_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o commission_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o power_n devolve_v on_o he_o by_o they_o can_v be_v full_o know_v for_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v in_o the_o roll_n though_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n make_v but_o commission_n of_o such_o importance_n be_v enroll_v therefore_o the_o loss_n of_o they_o can_v only_o be_v charge_v on_o that_o search_n and_o rasure_n of_o record_n make_v by_o bonner_n upon_o the_o commission_n grant_v to_o he_o by_o queen_n mary_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o work_n in_o the_o prerogative-office_n there_o be_v a_o subaltern_a commission_n grant_v to_o doctor_n afterward_o secretary_n petre_n on_o jan._n 13._o in_o the_o twenty_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o cromwell_n commission_n be_v at_o first_o conceive_v in_o very_a general_n word_n for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o king_n vicegerent_a in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n his_o vicar-general_n and_o official-principal_a but_o because_o he_o can_v not_o himself_o attend_v upon_o all_o these_o affair_n therefore_o doctor_n petre_n be_v depute_v under_o he_o for_o receive_v the_o probates_n of_o will_n from_o thence_o likewise_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o will_n where_o the_o estate_n be_v 200_o lib._n or_o above_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v try_v or_o prove_v in_o the_o bishop_n court_n but_o in_o the_o vicar-general_n court_n yet_o though_o he_o be_v call_v vicegerent_a in_o that_o commission_n he_o be_v speak_v of_o and_o write_v to_o by_o the_o name_n of_o vicar-general_n but_o after_o the_o second_o commission_n see_v and_o mention_v by_o the_o lord_n herbert_n in_o july_n 1536._o he_o be_v always_o design_v lord_n vicegerent_a the_o next_o thing_n that_o be_v everywhere_o labour_v with_o great_a industry_n be_v to_o engage_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n chief_o the_o regulars_n to_o own_o the_o king_n supremacy_n to_o which_o they_o general_o submit_v it_o in_o oxford_n the_o question_n be_v put_v whether_o
primitive_a time_n be_v to_o their_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o upon_o the_o confusion_n which_o the_o gothick_n war_n bring_v into_o italy_n be●edict_n and_o other_o set_v up_o religious_a house_n and_o more_o artificial_a rule_n and_o method_n be_v find_v out_o for_o their_o government_n not_o long_o after_o that_o austin_n the_o monk_n come_v into_o england_n and_o have_v baptise_a ethelbert_n he_o persuade_v he_o to_o find_v a_o monastery_n at_o canterbury_n which_o the_o king_n monasticon_fw-la by_o his_o charter_n exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o successor_n this_o be_v not_o only_o do_v by_o augustine_n consent_n but_o he_o by_o another_o write_n confirm_v this_o foundation_n and_o exempt_v both_o the_o monastery_n and_o all_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o it_o from_o his_o or_o his_o successor_n jurisdiction_n and_o most_o earnest_o conjure_v his_o successor_n never_o to_o give_v any_o trouble_n to_o the_o monk_n who_o be_v only_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o own_o abbot_n and_o this_o be_v grant_v that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o disturbance_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o whether_o this_o with_o many_o other_o ancient_a foundation_n be_v not_o latter_a forgery_n which_o i_o vehement_o suspect_v i_o leave_v to_o critic_n to_o discuss_v the_o next_o exemption_n that_o i_o find_v be_v grant_v in_o the_o year_n 680_o to_o the_o abbey_n of_o peterborough_n by_o pope_n agatho_n and_o be_v sign_v by_o theodore_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n call_v the_o pope_n legate_n this_o i_o doubt_v be_v forge_v afterward_o in_o the_o year_n 725_o king_n ina_n charter_n to_o the_o abbey_n of_o glassenbury_n relate_v to_o their_o ancient_a charter_n and_o exempt_v they_o from_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n king_n offa_n found_v and_o exempt_v the_o monastery_n of_o st._n alban_n in_o the_o year_n 793_o which_o pope_n honorius_n the_o 3d_o confirm_v anno_fw-la 1218_o kenulph_n king_n of_o mercia_n found_v and_o exempt_v abington_n in_o the_o year_n 821._o knut_n found_v and_o exempt_v st._n edmundsbury_n in_o the_o year_n 1020._o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eight_o century_n the_o dane_n begin_v to_o make_v their_o descent_n into_o england_n and_o make_v everywhere_o great_a depredation_n desert_v and_o find_v the_o monk_n have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o nation_n they_o make_v their_o most_o frequent_a inroad_n upon_o these_o place_n where_o they_o know_v the_o rich_a spoil_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o they_o do_v so_o waste_a and_o ruin_v these_o house_n britan_n that_o they_o be_v general_o abandon_v by_o the_o monk_n who_o as_o they_o love_v the_o ease_n and_o wealth_n they_o have_v enjoy_v former_o in_o their_o house_n so_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o expose_v themselves_o to_o the_o persecution_n of_o those_o heathenish_a invader_n but_o when_o they_o have_v desert_v their_o seat_n the_o secular_a clergy_n come_v and_o possess_v they_o so_o that_o in_o king_n edgar_n time_n there_o be_v scarce_o a_o monk_n in_o all_o england_n edgar_n he_o be_v a_o most_o dissolute_a and_o lewd_a prince_n but_o be_v persuade_v by_o dunstan_n and_o other_o monk_n that_o what_o he_o do_v towards_o the_o restore_n of_o that_o decay_a state_n will_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a merit_n become_v the_o great_a promoter_n of_o the_o monastical_a state_n in_o england_n for_o he_o convert_v most_o of_o the_o chapter_n into_o monastery_n and_o by_o his_o foundation_n of_o the_o priory_n of_o worcester_n it_o appear_v he_o have_v then_o found_v no_o few_o than_o forty_o seven_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o increase_v to_o fifty_o the_o number_n of_o pardon_n yet_o in_o his_o foundation_n he_o only_o exempt_v the_o monastery_n from_o all_o exaction_n or_o due_n which_o the_o bishop_n claim_v there_o be_v exemption_n of_o several_a rate_n and_o size_n some_o house_n be_v only_o exempt_v from_o all_o exaction_n other_o from_o all_o jurisdiction_n or_o visitation_n other_o have_v only_o a_o exemption_n for_o their_o precinct_n other_o for_o all_o the_o church_n that_o belong_v to_o they_o edward_n the_o confessor_n exempt_v many_o of_o these_o house_n which_o edgar_n have_v found_v as_o ramsey_n etc._n etc._n he_o also_o found_v and_o exempt_v coventry_n and_o westminster_n and_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o last_o be_v likewise_o confirm_v by_o pope_n nicolas_n in_o a_o bull_n to_o king_n edward_n william_n the_o conqueror_n found_v and_o exempt_v the_o abbey_n of_o battle_n from_o all_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n but_o after_o that_o time_n i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o our_o king_n exempt_v abbey_n from_o any_o thing_n but_o episcopal_a exaction_n for_o though_o former_o king_n have_v make_v law_n and_o give_v order_n about_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n yet_o now_o the_o claim_n to_o a_o immunity_n from_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n and_o also_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o height_n that_o prince_n be_v to_o meddle_v no_o more_o with_o sacred_a thing_n and_o henceforth_o all_o exemption_n be_v grant_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o claim_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o assume_v that_o power_n to_o themselves_o with_o many_o other_o usurpation_n all_o the_o ancient_a foundation_n be_v subscribe_v by_o the_o king_n house_n the_o queen_n and_o prince_n with_o many_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n and_o duke_n and_o earl_n consent_v the_o abbey_n be_v exempt_v from_o all_o jurisdiction_n both_o civil_a and_o spiritual_a and_o from_o all_o imposition_n and_o have_v general_o the_o privilege_n of_o sanctuary_n for_o all_o that_o flee_v to_o they_o be_v at_o ease_n and_o accountable_a to_o none_o so_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o please_v they_o find_v also_o mean_v to_o enrich_v themselves_o first_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n for_o they_o persuade_v all_o people_n that_o the_o soul_n depart_v go_v general_o thither_o few_o be_v so_o holy_a as_o to_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n and_o few_o so_o bad_a as_o to_o be_v cast_v to_o hell_n then_o people_n be_v make_v believe_v that_o the_o say_n of_o mass_n for_o their_o soul_n give_v they_o great_a relief_n in_o their_o torment_n and_o do_v at_o length_n deliver_v they_o out_o of_o they_o this_o be_v general_o receive_v it_o be_v think_v by_o all_o a_o piece_n of_o piety_n to_o their_o parent_n and_o of_o necessary_a care_n for_o themselves_o and_o their_o family_n to_o give_v some_o part_n of_o their_o estate_n towards_o the_o enrich_n of_o these_o house_n for_o have_v a_o mass_n say_v every_o day_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o for_o their_o own_o after_o their_o death_n and_o this_o do_v so_o spread_v that_o if_o some_o law_n have_v not_o restrain_v their_o profuseness_n the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o the_o estate_n in_o england_n have_v be_v give_v to_o those_o house_n but_o the_o statute_n of_o mortmain_n be_v not_o very_o effectual_a restrain_v for_o what_o king_n soever_o have_v refuse_v to_o grant_v a_o mortmain_n be_v sure_a to_o have_v a_o uneasy_a reign_n ever_o after_o yet_o this_o do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o monk_n but_o they_o fall_v upon_o other_o contrivance_n to_o get_v the_o best_a of_o all_o man_n jewel_n plate_n and_o furniture_n for_o they_o persuade_v they_o that_o the_o protection_n and_o intercession_n of_o saint_n be_v of_o mighty_a use_n to_o they_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o respect_n they_o put_v on_o the_o shrine_n and_o image_n but_o chief_o on_o the_o relic_n of_o saint_n they_o will_v find_v their_o account_n in_o it_o and_o the_o saint_n will_v take_v it_o kind_o at_o their_o hand_n and_o intercede_v the_o more_o earnest_o for_o they_o and_o people_n who_o see_v courtier_n much_o wrought_v on_o by_o present_n imagine_v the_o saint_n be_v of_o the_o same_o temper_n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o courtier_n love_v to_o have_v present_v put_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o the_o saint_n be_v satisfy_v if_o they_o be_v give_v to_o other_o and_o as_o in_o the_o court_n of_o prince_n the_o new_a favourite_n common_o have_v great_a credit_n so_o every_o new_a saint_n be_v believe_v to_o have_v a_o great_a force_n in_o his_o address_n and_o therefore_o every_o body_n be_v to_o run_v to_o their_o shrine_n and_o make_v great_a present_n to_o they_o this_o be_v infuse_v into_o the_o credulous_a multitude_n they_o bring_v the_o rich_a thing_n they_o have_v to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o body_n or_o relic_n of_o those_o saint_n be_v lay_v some_o image_n be_v also_o believe_v to_o have_v a_o peculiar_a excellency_n in_o they_o and_o pilgrimage_n and_o present_n to_o these_o be_v much_o magnify_v but_o to_o quicken_v all_o this_o the_o monk_n find_v the_o mean_n either_o by_o dream_n and_o vision_n or_o strange_a miraculous_a story_n to_o feed_v the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n
the_o fault_n be_v in_o her_o humour_n or_o in_o the_o provocation_n she_o meet_v with_o the_o reader_n may_v conjecture_v the_o king_n receive_v the_o news_n of_o her_o death_n with_o some_o regrett_n but_o he_o will_v not_o give_v leave_n to_o bury_v she_o as_o she_o have_v order_v but_o make_v her_o body_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o abbey_n church_n of_o peterborough_n which_o he_o afterward_o convert_v to_o a_o episcopal_a cathedral_n but_o queen_n anne_n do_v not_o carry_v her_o death_n so_o decent_o for_o she_o express_v too_o much_o joy_n at_o it_o both_o in_o her_o carriage_n and_o dress_n on_o the_o four_o of_o february_n the_o parliament_n sit_v 1536._o upon_o a_o prorogation_n of_o 14_o month_n for_o in_o the_o record_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o intermedial_a prorogation_n where_o a_o great_a many_o law_n relate_v to_o civil_a concern_v parliament_n be_v pass_v by_o the_o 15_o act_n the_o power_n that_o have_v be_v give_v by_o a_o former_a act_n to_o the_o king_n for_o name_v thirty_o two_o person_n to_o make_v a_o collection_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v again_o confirm_v for_o nothing_o have_v be_v do_v upon_o the_o former_a act._n but_o there_o be_v no_o limitation_n of_o time_n in_o this_o act_n and_o so_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o pursuance_n of_o it_o the_o great_a business_n of_o this_o session_n of_o parliament_n suppress_v be_v the_o suppress_v the_o lesser_a monastery_n how_o this_o go_v through_o the_o two_o house_n we_o can_v know_v from_o the_o journal_o for_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o all_o the_o historian_n of_o that_o time_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o report_n which_o the_o visitor_n make_v to_o the_o king_n be_v read_v in_o parliament_n which_o represent_v the_o manner_n of_o these_o house_n so_o odious_o that_o the_o act_n be_v easy_o carry_v the_o preamble_n bear_v that_o small_a religious_a house_n under_o the_o number_n of_o twelve_o person_n have_v be_v long_o and_o notorious_o guilty_a of_o vicious_a and_o abominable_a live_n and_o do_v much_o consume_v and_o waste_v their_o church_n land_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o that_o for_o above_o two_o hundred_o year_n there_o have_v be_v many_o visitation_n for_o reform_v these_o abuse_n but_o with_o no_o success_n their_o vicious_a live_a increase_a daily_o so_o that_o except_o small_a house_n be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o religious_a put_v into_o great_a monastery_n there_o can_v no_o reformation_n be_v expect_v in_o that_o matter_n whereupon_o the_o king_n have_v receive_v a_o full_a information_n of_o these_o abuse_n both_o by_o his_o visitor_n and_o other_o credible_a way_n and_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a great_a monastery_n in_o which_o religion_n be_v well_o keep_v and_o observe_v which_o have_v not_o the_o full_a number_n in_o they_o that_o they_o may_v and_o ought_v to_o receive_v have_v make_v a_o full_a declaration_n of_o the_o premise_n in_o parliament_n whereupon_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o all_o house_n which_o may_v spend_v yearly_a 200_o l._n or_o within_o it_o shall_v be_v suppress_v and_o their_o revenue_n convert_v to_o better_a use_n and_o they_o compel_v to_o reform_v their_o life_n the_o lord_n herbert_n think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o statute_n in_o the_o print_a book_n have_v no_o preamble_n but_o begin_v blunt_o fuller_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o wonder_v that_o lord_n do_v not_o see_v the_o record_n and_o he_o set_v down_o the_o preamble_n and_o say_v the_o rest_n follow_v as_o in_o the_o print_a statute_n chap._n 27_o by_o a_o mistake_n for_o the_o 28_o this_o show_v that_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o ever_o look_v on_o the_o record_n for_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a statute_n of_o dissolution_n distinct_a from_o the_o 28_o chap._n and_o the_o preamble_n which_o fuller_n set_v down_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o 28_o chapter_n as_o he_o say_v but_o to_o the_o 18_o chapter_n which_o be_v never_o print_v and_o the_o 28_o relate_v in_o the_o preamble_n to_o that_o other_o statute_n which_o have_v give_v these_o monastery_n to_o the_o king_n the_o reason_n that_o be_v pretend_v for_o dissolve_v these_o house_n be_v it_o that_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o person_n in_o they_o they_o enter_v into_o confederacy_n together_o and_o their_o poverty_n set_v they_o on_o to_o use_v many_o ill_a art_n to_o grow_v rich._n they_o be_v also_o much_o abroad_o and_o keep_v no_o manner_n of_o discipline_n in_o their_o house_n but_o those_o house_n be_v general_o much_o rich_a than_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v for_o the_o abbot_n raise_v great_a fine_n out_o of_o they_o hold_v the_o lease_n still_o low_a and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o entertain_v a_o great_a number_n in_o their_o house_n and_o so_o enrich_v themselves_o and_o their_o brethren_n by_o the_o fine_n that_o be_v raise_v for_o many_o house_n then_o rent_v at_o two_o hundred_o pound_n be_v worth_a many_o thousand_o as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o compare_v what_o they_o be_v then_o value_v at_o which_o be_v collect_v by_o speed_n with_o what_o their_o estate_n be_v true_o worth_a when_o this_o be_v pass_v in_o parliament_n stokesl●y_n bishop_n of_o london_n say_v these_o lesser_a house_n be_v as_o thorn_n soon_o pluck_v up_o but_o the_o great_a abbot_n be_v like_o putrify_a old_a oak_n yet_o they_o must_v needs_o follow_v and_o so_o will_v other_o do_v in_o christendom_n before_o many_o year_n be_v pass_v by_o another_o act_n all_o these_o house_n their_o church_n land_n and_o all_o their_o good_n be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n together_o with_o all_o other_o house_n which_o within_o a_o year_n before_o the_o make_n of_o the_o act_n have_v be_v dissolve_v or_o suppress_v and_o for_o the_o gather_v the_o revenue_n that_o belong_v to_o they_o a_o new_a court_n be_v erect_v call_v the_o court_n of_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o king_n revenue_n which_o be_v to_o consist_v of_o a_o chancellor_n a_o treasurer_n a_o attorney_n and_o solicitor_n and_o ten_o auditor_n seventeen_o receiver_n a_o clerk_n a_o usher_n and_o a_o messenger_n this_o court_n be_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o revenue_n of_o such_o house_n as_o be_v now_o dissolve_v except_v only_o such_o as_o the_o king_n by_o his_o letters-patent_n continue_v in_o their_o former_a state_n appoint_v a_o seal_n for_o the_o court_n with_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o dispose_v of_o these_o land_n so_o as_o may_v be_v most_o for_o the_o king_n service_n thus_o ●ell_o the_o lesser_a abbey_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 376_o and_o soon_o after_o this_o parliament_n which_o have_v do_v the_o king_n such_o eminent_a service_n and_o have_v now_o sit_v six_o year_n be_v dissolve_v on_o the_o 14_o of_o april_n in_o the_o convocation_n a_o motion_n be_v make_v of_o great_a consequence_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o english_a design_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o clergy_n when_o they_o procure_v tindall_n translation_n to_o be_v condemn_v and_o suppress_v it_o give_v out_o that_o they_o intend_v to_o make_v a_o translation_n into_o the_o vulgar-tongue_n yet_o it_o be_v afterward_o upon_o a_o long_a consultation_n resolve_v that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o the_o church_n to_o give_v the_o bible_n in_o a_o vulgar-tongue_n or_o not_o as_o they_o please_v and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o it_o and_o that_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o expedient_a to_o do_v it_o upon_o which_o those_o that_o promote_v the_o reformation_n make_v great_a complaint_n and_o say_v it_o be_v visible_a the_o clergy_n know_v there_o be_v a_o opposition_n between_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o doctrine_n that_o they_o have_v first_o condemn_v wickliffs_n translation_n and_o then_o tindall_n and_o though_o they_o ought_v to_o teach_v man_n the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o suppress_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v in_o the_o vulgar-tongue_n and_o all_o be_v charge_v to_o read_v and_o remember_v the_o law_n it_o the_o apostle_n write_v in_o greek_a which_o be_v then_o the_o most_o common_a language_n in_o the_o world_n christ_n do_v also_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o send_v the_o people_n to_o they_o and_o by_o what_o st._n paul_n say_v of_o timothy_n it_o appear_v that_o child_n be_v then_o early_o train_v up_o in_o that_o study_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o nation_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o bible_n be_v translate_v into_o their_o tongue_n the_o latin_a translation_n be_v very_o ancient_a the_o bible_n be_v afterward_o put_v into_o the_o scythian_a dalmatian_a and_o gothick_n tongue_n it_o continue_v thus_o for_o
several_a age_n till_o the_o state_n of_o monkery_n rise_v and_o then_o when_o they_o engross_v the_o riches_n and_o the_o pope_n assume_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o these_o design_n nor_o with_o the_o art_n use_v to_o promote_v they_o to_o let_v the_o scripture_n be_v much_o know_v therefore_o legend_n and_o strange_a story_n of_o vision_n with_o other_o device_n be_v think_v more_o proper_a for_o keep_v up_o their_o credit_n and_o carry_v on_o their_o ends._n it_o be_v now_o general_o desire_v that_o if_o there_o be_v just_a exception_n against_o what_o tindal_n have_v do_v these_o may_v be_v amend_v in_o a_o new_a translation_n this_o be_v a_o plausible_a thing_n and_o wrought_v much_o on_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o who_o plain_o conclude_v that_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n must_v needs_o know_v their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n to_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o it_o upon_o these_o ground_n cranmer_n who_o be_v project_v the_o most_o effectual_a mean_n for_o promote_a a_o reformation_n of_o doctrine_n move_v in_o convocation_n that_o they_o shall_v petition_v the_o king_n for_o leave_v to_o make_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n but_o gardiner_n and_o all_o his_o party_n oppose_v it_o both_o in_o convocation_n and_o in_o secret_a with_o the_o king_n it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o the_o heresy_n and_o extravagant_a opinion_n which_o be_v then_o in_o germany_n and_o from_o thence_o come_v over_o to_o england_n it_o spring_v from_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o whereas_o in_o may_v the_o last_o year_n nineteen_o hollander_n be_v accuse_v of_o some_o heretical_a opinion_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n or_o that_o he_o take_v flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n or_o that_o the_o sacrament_n have_v any_o effect_n on_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o in_o which_o opinion_n fourteen_o of_o they_o remain_v obstinate_a and_o be_v burn_v by_o pair_n in_o several_a place_n it_o be_v complain_v that_o all_o those_o draw_v their_o damnable_a error_n from_o the_o indiscreet_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o offer_v the_o bible_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n to_o the_o whole_a nation_n during_o these_o distraction_n will_v prove_v as_o they_o pretend_v the_o great_a snare_n that_o can_v be_v therefore_o they_o propose_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o short_a exposition_n of_o the_o most_o useful_a and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n give_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o a_o certain_a subjection_n to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o other_o party_n though_o they_o like_v well_o the_o publish_n such_o a_o treatise_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n yet_o by_o no_o mean_n think_v that_o sufficient_a but_o say_v the_o people_n must_v be_v allow_v to_o search_v the_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o such_o treatise_n be_v according_a to_o it_o these_o argument_n prevail_v with_o the_o two_o house_n of_o convocation_n so_o they_o petition_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v give_v order_n to_o some_o to_o set_v about_o it_o to_o this_o great_a opposition_n be_v make_v at_o court_n some_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n tell_v the_o king_n that_o a_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n will_v arise_v out_o of_o it_o and_o that_o he_o can_v no_o more_o govern_v his_o subject_n if_o he_o give_v way_n to_o that_o but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o be_v represent_v that_o nothing_o will_v make_v his_o supremacy_n so_o acceptable_a to_o the_o nation_n and_o make_v the_o pope_n more_o hateful_a than_o to_o let_v they_o see_v that_o whereas_o the_o pope_n have_v govern_v they_o by_o a_o blind_a obedience_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o darkness_n the_o king_n bring_v they_o into_o the_o light_n and_o give_v they_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o will_v more_o effectual_o extirpate_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o discover_v the_o imposture_n of_o the_o monk_n than_o the_o bible_n in_o english_a in_o which_o all_o people_n will_v clear_o discern_v there_o be_v no_o foundation_n for_o those_o thing_n these_o argument_n join_v with_o the_o power_n that_o the_o queen_n have_v in_o his_o affection_n be_v so_o much_o consider_v by_o the_o king_n that_o he_o give_v order_n for_o set_v about_o it_o immediate_o to_o who_o that_o work_n be_v commit_v or_o how_o they_o proceed_v in_o it_o i_o know_v not_o for_o the_o account_n of_o these_o thing_n have_v not_o be_v preserve_v nor_o convey_v to_o we_o with_o that_o care_n that_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o thing_n require_v yet_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o work_n be_v carry_v on_o at_o a_o good_a rate_n for_o three_o year_n after_o this_o it_o be_v print_v at_o paris_n which_o show_v they_o make_v all_o convenient_a haste_n in_o a_o thing_n that_o require_v so_o much_o deliberation_n anne_n but_o this_o be_v the_o last_o public_a good_a act_n of_o this_o unfortunate_a queen_n who_o the_o near_o she_o draw_v to_o her_o end_n grow_v more_o full_a of_o good_a work_n she_o have_v distribute_v in_o the_o last_o nine_o month_n of_o her_o life_n between_o fourteen_o and_o fifteen_o thousand_o pound_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o be_v design_v great_a and_o public_a good_a thing_n and_o by_o all_o appearance_n if_o she_o have_v live_v the_o money_n that_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o suppression_n of_o religious_a house_n have_v be_v better_o employ_v than_o it_o be_v in_o january_n she_o bring_v forth_o a_o dead_a son_n this_o be_v think_v to_o have_v make_v ill_a impression_n on_o the_o king_n and_o that_o as_o he_o conclude_v from_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n by_o the_o former_a queen_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v displease_v to_o god_n so_o he_o may_v upon_o this_o misfortune_n begin_v to_o make_v the_o like_a judgement_n of_o this_o marriage_n sure_o enough_o the_o popish_a party_n be_v earnest_o set_v against_o the_o queen_n look_v on_o she_o as_o the_o great_a supporter_n of_o heresy_n and_o at_o that_o time_n fox_n then_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n be_v in_o germany_n at_o smalcald_a treat_v a_o league_n with_o the_o protestant_a prince_n who_o insist_v much_o on_o the_o ausburg_n confession_n there_o be_v many_o conference_n between_o fox_n and_o doctor_n barnes_n on_o and_o some_o other_o with_o the_o lutheran_n divine_n for_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o thing_n be_v in_o a_o good_a forwardness_n all_o which_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o queen_n gardiner_z be_v then_o ambassador_n in_o france_n and_o write_v earnest_o to_o the_o king_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o enter_v into_o any_o religious_a league_n with_o these_o prince_n for_o that_o will_v alienate_v all_o the_o world_n from_o he_o and_o dispose_v his_o own_o subject_n to_o rebel_n the_o king_n think_v the_o german-prince_n and_o divine_n shall_v have_v submit_v all_o thing_n to_o his_o judgement_n and_o have_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o learning_n and_o be_v so_o puff_v up_o with_o the_o flatter_a praise_n that_o he_o daily_o hear_v that_o he_o grow_v impatient_a of_o any_o opposition_n and_o think_v that_o he_o dictate_v shall_v pass_v for_o oracle_n and_o because_o the_o german_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o so_o his_o mind_n be_v alienate_v from_o they_o but_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n at_o court_n and_o gardiner_z beyond_o sea_n think_v there_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v a_o mean_a to_o accommodate_v the_o king_n both_o with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n if_o the_o queen_n be_v once_o out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o than_o he_o may_v free_o marry_v any_o one_o who_o he_o please_v and_o that_o marriage_n with_o the_o male_a issue_n of_o it_o can_v not_o be_v dispute_v whereas_o as_o long_o as_o the_o queen_n live_v her_o marriage_n as_o be_v judge_v null_a from_o the_o beginning_n can_v never_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o that_o party_n with_o these_o reason_n of_o state_n other_o of_o affection_n concur_v the_o queen_n have_v be_v his_o wife_n three_o year_n but_o at_o this_o time_n he_o entertain_v a_o secret_a love_n for_o jane_n seimour_n who_o have_v all_o the_o charm_n both_o of_o beauty_n and_o youth_n in_o her_o person_n and_o her_o humour_n be_v temper_v between_o the_o severe_a gravity_n of_o queen_n katherine_n and_o the_o gay_a pleasantness_n of_o queen_n anne_n the_o queen_n perceive_v this_o alienation_n of_o the_o king_n heart_n use_v all_o possible_a art_n to_o recover_v that_o affection_n of_o who_o decay_n she_o be_v sad_o sensible_a but_o the_o success_n be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o she_o design_v for_o the_o king_n
limit_v by_o any_o appearance_n of_o difficulty_n which_o flow_v from_o our_o want_n of_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o thing_n and_o our_o faculty_n be_v weak_a our_o notion_n of_o impossibility_n be_v proportion_v to_o these_o but_o stokesley_n think_v he_o have_v find_v out_o a_o demonstration_n that_o may_v put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o whole_a controversy_n for_o he_o show_v that_o in_o nature_n we_o see_v one_o substance_n change_v into_o another_o and_o yet_o the_o accident_n remain_v so_o when_o water_n be_v boil_a till_o it_o evaporate_v into_o air_n one_o substance_n be_v change_v into_o another_o and_o moisture_n that_o be_v the_o accident_n remain_v it_o be_v still_o moist_a this_o as_o one_o of_o the_o eye-witness_n relate_v be_v receive_v with_o great_a applause_n and_o much_o joy_n appear_v in_o the_o bishop_n look_n upon_o it_o but_o whether_o the_o spectator_n can_v distinguish_v well_o between_o laughter_n for_o joy_n and_o a_o scornful_a smile_n i_o can_v tell_v for_o certain_o this_o crotchet_n must_v have_v provoke_v the_o latter_a rather_o since_o it_o be_v a_o sophism_n not_o to_o be_v forgive_v any_o above_o a_o junior_a sophister_n thus_o from_o a_o accidental_a conversion_n where_o the_o substance_n be_v still_o the_o same_o only_o alter_v in_o its_o form_n and_o quality_n according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o that_o philosophy_n which_o be_v then_o most_o in_o vogue_n to_o infer_v a_o substantial_a mutation_n where_o one_o substance_n be_v annihilate_v and_o a_o new_a one_o produce_v in_o its_o place_n but_o these_o argument_n it_o seem_v disorder_v lambert_n somewhat_o and_o either_o the_o king_n stern_a look_n the_o variety_n of_o the_o disputant_n ten_o one_o after_o another_o engage_v with_o he_o or_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o presence_n with_o the_o length_n of_o the_o action_n which_o continue_v five_o hour_n put_v he_o in_o some_o confusion_n it_o be_v not_o improbable_a but_o they_o may_v in_o the_o end_n bring_v he_o to_o be_v quite_o silent_a this_o one_o that_o be_v present_a say_v flow_v from_o his_o be_v spend_v and_o weary_v and_o that_o he_o see_v what_o he_o say_v be_v little_o consider_v but_o other_o ascribe_v it_o to_o his_o be_v confound_v with_o the_o argument_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o he_o so_o the_o general_a applause_n of_o the_o hall_n give_v the_o victory_n on_o the_o king_n side_n when_o he_o be_v thus_o silent_a the_o king_n ask_v he_o if_o he_o be_v convince_v by_o these_o argument_n and_o whether_o he_o will_v live_v or_o die_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o commit_v his_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o submit_v his_o body_n to_o the_o king_n clemency_n but_o the_o king_n tell_v he_o if_o he_o do_v not_o recant_v he_o must_v die_v for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v a_o patron_n of_o heretic_n and_o since_o he_o will_v not_o do_v that_o the_o king_n order_v cromwell_n to_o read_v the_o sentence_n which_o he_o as_o the_o king_n vicegerent_n do_v condemn_v declare_v he_o a_o incorrigible_a heretic_n and_o condemn_v he_o to_o be_v burn_v which_o be_v soon_o after_o execute_v in_o smithfield_n in_o a_o most_o barbarous_a manner_n for_o when_o his_o leg_n and_o thigh_n be_v burn_v to_o the_o stump_n there_o not_o be_v fire_n enough_o to_o consume_v the_o rest_n of_o he_o sudden_o two_o of_o the_o officer_n raise_v up_o his_o body_n on_o their_o halberd_n he_o be_v yet_o alive_a and_o cry_v out_o none_o but_o christ_n none_o but_o christ_n and_o then_o they_o let_v he_o fall_v down_o into_o the_o fire_n where_o he_o be_v quick_o consume_v to_o ash_n burn_v he_o be_v a_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n his_o answer_n to_o the_o article_n object_v to_o he_o by_o warham_n and_o a_o book_n which_o in_o his_o imprisonment_n he_o write_v for_o justify_v his_o opinion_n which_o he_o direct_v to_o the_o king_n do_v show_v both_o great_a learning_n for_o those_o time_n and_o a_o very_a good_a judgement_n this_o be_v do_v the_o party_n that_o oppose_v the_o reformation_n persuade_v the_o king_n that_o he_o have_v get_v so_o much_o reputation_n to_o himself_o by_o it_o that_o it_o will_v effectual_o refute_v all_o aspersion_n which_o have_v be_v cast_v on_o he_o as_o if_o he_o intend_v to_o change_v the_o faith_n neither_o do_v they_o forget_v to_o set_v on_o he_o in_o his_o weak_a side_n and_o magnify_v all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v as_o if_o the_o oracle_n have_v utter_v it_o by_o which_o they_o say_v it_o appear_v he_o be_v indeed_o a_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o have_v so_o good_a a_o conceit_n of_o what_o be_v then_o do_v that_o he_o intend_v to_o pursue_v these_o severity_n further_o and_o therefore_o soon_o after_o he_o resolve_v on_o summon_v a_o parliament_n partly_o for_o confirm_v what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o complete_n what_o remain_v to_o be_v do_v further_o in_o the_o suppression_n of_o the_o monastery_n and_o likewise_o for_o make_v a_o new_a law_n for_o punish_v some_o opinion_n which_o be_v then_o spread_v about_o the_o sacrament_n and_o some_o other_o article_n as_o will_v soon_o appear_v now_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n interest_n at_o court_n suffer_v a_o great_a diminution_n court_n his_o chief_a friend_n among_o the_o bishop_n be_v fox_n bishop_n of_o hereford_n who_o be_v much_o esteem_v and_o employ_v by_o the_o king_n he_o be_v a_o privy-councillor_n and_o have_v be_v employ_v in_o a_o negotiation_n with_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n to_o who_o he_o be_v a_o very_a acceptable_a minister_n they_o propose_v that_o the_o king_n will_v receive_v the_o ausburg_n confession_n except_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o shall_v be_v alter_v in_o it_o by_o common_a consent_n and_o defend_v it_o in_o a_o free_a council_n if_o any_o such_o be_v call_v and_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v any_o council_n call_v by_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o patron_n of_o their_o league_n and_o they_o shall_v mutual_o assist_v one_o another_o the_o king_n give_v 100000_o crown_n a_o year_n towards_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o league_n the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n be_v then_o in_o france_n do_v much_o dissuade_v the_o king_n from_o make_v a_o religious_a league_n with_o they_o against_o which_o he_o give_v some_o plausible_a politic_a reason_n for_o his_o conscience_n never_o struggle_v with_o a_o maxim_n of_o state_n but_o the_o king_n like_v most_o of_o the_o proposition_n prince_n only_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v the_o title_n of_o defender_n of_o their_o league_n till_o some_o difference_n in_o the_o doctrine_n be_v agree_v so_o they_o be_v to_o have_v send_v over_o sturmius_fw-la as_o their_o agent_n and_o melancthon_n bucer_n and_o george_n draco_n to_o confer_v with_o the_o king_n divine_n but_o upon_o queen_n anne_n fall_n this_o vanish_v and_o though_o the_o king_n enter_v into_o a_o civil_a league_n with_o they_o and_o have_v frequent_o a_o mind_n to_o bring_v over_o melancthon_n for_o who_o he_o have_v a_o great_a value_n yet_o it_o never_o take_v effect_n there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o german_n be_v more_o positive_a than_o in_o any_o other_o point_n of_o reformation_n these_o be_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o a_o allowance_n for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o clergy_n all_o the_o people_n have_v get_v these_o thing_n in_o their_o head_n so_o that_o it_o be_v general_o believe_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v in_o time_n consent_v to_o they_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o reformation_n have_v be_v much_o stop_v the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o contrary_a practice_n have_v engage_v that_o nation_n very_o early_o for_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n common_a sense_n make_v they_o all_o desire_n to_o understand_v what_o they_o do_v and_o say_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lewd_a and_o dissolute_a practice_n of_o the_o unmarried_a clergy_n be_v so_o public_a that_o they_o think_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o family_n of_o which_o that_o nation_n be_v extreme_o sensible_a can_v not_o be_v secure_v unless_o the_o clergy_n may_v have_v wife_n of_o their_o own_o but_o at_o these_o the_o king_n stick_v more_o than_o at_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o disputable_a for_o in_o all_o other_o point_n that_o be_v material_a he_o have_v set_v up_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ausburg_n confession_n and_o there_o be_v good_a ground_n to_o hope_v that_o the_o evidence_n of_o at_o least_o two_o of_o these_o will_v have_v bring_v over_o the_o king_n to_o a_o full_a agreement_n and_o firm_a union_n with_o they_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n death_n give_v a_o great_a blow_n to_o that_o design_n for_o though_o that_o party_n think_v they_o have_v his_o room_n well_o
of_o they_o than_o to_o direct_v their_o belief_n by_o they_o the_o king_n lean_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a nor_o to_o the_o left_a hand_n neither_o to_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o party_n but_o set_v the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n only_o before_o his_o eye_n and_o therefore_o be_v now_o resolve_v to_o have_v this_o set_v forth_o to_o his_o subject_n without_o any_o corrupt_a mixture_n and_o to_o have_v such_o decent_a ceremony_n continue_v and_o the_o true_a use_n of_o they_o teach_v by_o which_o all_o abuse_n may_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o dispute_n about_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n cease_v that_o so_o all_o his_o subject_n may_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o direct_v in_o the_o reverend_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o resolve_v to_o punish_v severe_o all_o transgressor_n of_o what_o sort_n or_o side_n soever_o they_o be_v the_o king_n be_v resolve_v that_o christ_n that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n shall_v have_v the_o victory_n and_o therefore_o have_v appoint_v some_o bishop_n and_o divine_n to_o draw_v up_o a_o exposition_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian-man_n who_o be_v the_o two_o arch-bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n duresm_n winchester_n rochester_n hereford_n and_o st._n david_n and_o doctor_n thirleby_n robertson_n cox_n day_n oglethorp_n redmayn_n edgeworth_n crayford_n symonds_n robins_n and_o tresham_n he_o have_v also_o appoint_v other_o to_o examine_v what_o ceremony_n shall_v be_v retain_v and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a use_n of_o they_o who_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n ely_n sarum_n chichester_n worcester_n and_o landaff_n the_o king_n have_v also_o command_v the_o judge_n and_o other_o justice_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o person_n commission_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o act_n former_o pass_v to_o proceed_v against_o all_o transgressor_n and_o punish_v they_o according_a to_o law_n 1540_o and_o he_o conclude_v with_o a_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o king_n who_o due_a praise_n he_o say_v a_o man_n of_o far_o great_a eloquence_n than_o himself_o be_v can_v not_o full_o set_v forth_o the_o lord_n approve_v of_o this_o nomination_n and_o order_v that_o these_o committee_n shall_v sit_v constant_o on_o munday_n wedensday_n and_o friday_n and_o no_o other_o day_n they_o be_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o afternoon_n but_o their_o proceed_n will_v require_v so_o full_a a_o relation_n that_o i_o shall_v first_o open_v the_o other_o affair_n that_o pass_v in_o this_o session_n and_o leave_v these_o to_o the_o last_o on_o the_o 14_o of_o april_n the_o king_n create_v cromwell_n earl_n of_o essex_n essex_n the_o male_a line_n of_o the_o bourchier_n that_o have_v carry_v that_o title_n be_v extinguish_v this_o show_v that_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o cromwel_n fall_n must_v be_v find_v in_o some_o other_o thing_n than_o his_o make_n up_o the_o king_n marriage_n who_o have_v never_o thus_o raise_v his_o title_n if_o he_o have_v intend_v so_o soon_o to_o pull_v he_o down_o on_o the_o 22d_o of_o april_n a_o bill_n be_v bring_v in_o for_o suppress_v the_o knight_n of_o st._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n jerusalem_n their_o first_o foundation_n be_v to_o be_v a_o guard_n to_o the_o pilgrim_n that_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n for_o some_o age_n that_o be_v extol_v as_o the_o high_a expression_n of_o devotion_n and_o reverence_n to_o our_o saviour_n to_o go_v and_o view_v the_o place_n of_o his_o abode_n and_o chief_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_a bury_v and_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n upon_o which_o many_o enter_v into_o a_o religious_a knighthood_n who_o be_v to_o defend_v the_o holy_a land_n and_o conduct_v the_o pilgrim_n those_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o knights-templar_n and_o hospitaller_n the_o former_a be_v the_o great_a and_o rich_a but_o the_o other_o be_v also_o very_o considerable_a the_o pope_n and_o their_o clergy_n do_v everywhere_o animate_v all_o prince_n and_o great_a person_n to_o undertake_v expedition_n into_o these_o part_n which_o be_v very_o costly_a and_o dangerous_a and_o prove_v fatal_a to_o almost_o all_o the_o prince_n that_o make_v they_o yet_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n from_o which_o all_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o pope_n power_n who_o go_v on_o this_o expedition_n such_o as_o die_v in_o it_o be_v also_o reckon_v martyr_n wrought_v wonderful_o on_o a_o blind_a and_o superstitious_a age._n but_o such_o as_o can_v not_o go_v be_v persuade_v that_o if_o on_o their_o deathbed_n they_o vow_v to_o go_v upon_o their_o recovery_n and_o leave_v some_o land_n to_o maintain_v a_o knight_n that_o shall_v go_v thither_o and_o fight_v against_o the_o infidel_n it_o will_v do_v as_o well_o upon_o this_o great_a and_o vast_a endowment_n be_v make_v but_o there_o be_v many_o complaint_n make_v of_o the_o templar_n for_o betray_v and_o rob_v the_o pilgrim_n and_o other_o horrid_a abuse_n which_o may_v reasonable_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v true_a though_o other_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n lie_v the_o blame_n rather_o on_o the_o covetousness_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o pope_n malice_n to_o they_o yet_o in_o a_o general_n council_n the_o whole_a order_n be_v condemn_v and_o suppress_v and_o such_o of_o they_o as_o can_v be_v take_v be_v cruel_o put_v to_o death_n the_o order_n of_o the_o hospitaller_n stand_v yet_o do_v not_o grow_v much_o after_o that_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o holy-land_n by_o the_o sultan_n and_o late_o out_o of_o the_o isle_n of_o rhodes_n and_o be_v at_o this_o time_n in_o malta_n their_o great_a master_n depend_v on_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n so_o it_o be_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o let_v a_o house_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o foreign_a power_n stand_v long_o and_o it_o seem_v they_o will_v not_o willing_o surrender_v up_o their_o house_n as_o other_o have_v do_v therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o force_v they_o out_o of_o it_o by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o on_o the_o 22d_o of_o april_n be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n and_o on_o the_o 26_o the_o second_o time_n and_o on_o the_o 29_o the_o three_o time_n by_o which_o both_o their_o house_n in_o england_n and_o another_o they_o have_v in_o kilmainam_n in_o ireland_n be_v suppress_v great_a pension_n be_v reserve_v by_o the_o act_n to_o the_o prior_n a_o 1000_o lib._n to_o he_o of_o st._n johns_n near_a london_n and_o 500_o mark_n to_o the_o other_o with_o very_o considerable_a allowance_n for_o the_o knight_n which_o in_o all_o amount_v near_o to_o 3000_o lib._n yearly_a but_o on_o the_o 14_o of_o may_v the_o parliament_n be_v prorogue_v to_o the_o 25_o and_o a_o vote_n pass_v that_o their_o bill_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o state_n they_o be_v in_o upon_o their_o next_o meeting_n as_o they_o be_v go_v on_o in_o their_o business_n a_o great_a change_n of_o court_n break_v out_o for_o on_o the_o 13_o of_o june_n at_o the_o council_n table_n the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n in_o the_o king_n name_n challenge_v the_o lord_n cromwell_n of_o high_a treason_n 〈◊〉_d and_o arrest_v he_o send_v he_o prisoner_n to_o the_o tower_n he_o have_v many_o enemy_n among_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n the_o nobility_n despise_v he_o and_o think_v it_o lessen_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o title_n to_o see_v the_o son_n of_o a_o blacksmith_n raise_v so_o many_o degree_n above_o they_o his_o aspire_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o garter_n be_v think_v inexcusable_a vanity_n and_o his_o have_v so_o many_o place_n heap_v on_o he_o as_o lord_n privy_a seal_n lord_n chamberlain_n of_o england_n and_o lord_n vicegerent_n with_o the_o mastership_n of_o the_o roll_n with_o which_o he_o have_v but_o late_o part_v draw_v much_o envy_n on_o he_o all_o the_o popish_a party_n hate_v he_o out_o of_o measure_n the_o suppression_n of_o the_o abbey_n be_v lay_v whole_o at_o his_o door_n the_o attaindor_n and_o all_o other_o severe_a proceed_n be_v impute_v to_o his_o counsel_n he_o be_v also_o think_v to_o be_v the_o person_n that_o have_v keep_v the_o king_n and_o the_o emperor_n at_o such_o distance_n and_o therefore_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n and_o gardiner_z beside_o private_a animosity_n hate_v he_o on_o that_o account_n and_o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o impossible_a if_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o bring_v on_o a_o treaty_n with_o the_o emperor_n which_o they_o hope_v will_v open_v the_o way_n for_o one_o with_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o more_o secret_a reason_n wrought_v his_o ruin_n with_o the_o king_n the_o fear_n he_o be_v in_o of_o a_o conjunction_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o france_n do_v now_o abate_v for_o he_o understand_v that_o it_o go_v no_o further_a
can_v be_v assure_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n death_n till_o he_o first_o find_v in_o himself_o these_o necessary_a qualification_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o gospel_n have_v once_o settle_v on_o this_o phrase_n their_o follower_n will_v needs_o defend_v it_o but_o real_o make_v it_o worse_o by_o their_o explanation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v they_o have_v they_o at_o great_a advantage_n in_o it_o and_o call_v they_o solifidian_o and_o say_v they_o be_v against_o good_a work_n though_o whatever_o unwary_a expression_n some_o of_o they_o throw_v out_o they_o always_o declare_v good_a work_n indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o two_o thing_n that_o be_v material_a there_o be_v also_o a_o three_o but_o there_o the_o difference_n be_v more_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o expression_n the_o one_o be_v what_o be_v good_a work_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v general_o deliver_v that_o work_n which_o do_v a_o immediate_a honour_n to_o god_n or_o his_o saint_n be_v more_o valuable_a than_o work_v do_v to_o other_o man_n and_o that_o the_o honour_n they_o do_v to_o saint_n in_o their_o image_n and_o relic_n and_o to_o god_n in_o his_o priest_n that_o be_v dedicate_v to_o he_o be_v the_o high_a piece_n of_o holiness_n as_o have_v the_o best_a object_n this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o that_o trade_n which_o bring_v in_o both_o riches_n and_o glory_n to_o their_o church_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o reformer_n teach_v that_o justice_n and_o mercy_n with_o other_o good_a work_n do_v in_o obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n be_v only_o necessary_a and_o for_o these_o thing_n so_o much_o magnify_v at_o rome_n they_o acknowledge_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o decent_a splendour_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o good_a provision_n to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o encouragement_n of_o those_o who_o dedicate_v themselves_o to_o his_o service_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o what_o be_v beyond_o these_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n the_o other_o main_a difference_n be_v about_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n which_o the_o friar_n have_v raise_v so_o high_a that_o people_n be_v come_v to_o think_v they_o buy_v and_o sell_v with_o almighty_a god_n for_o heaven_n and_o all_o other_o his_o blessing_n this_o the_o reformer_n judge_v be_v the_o height_n of_o arrogance_n and_o therefore_o teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v indeed_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o that_o the_o purchase_n of_o heaven_n be_v only_o by_o the_o death_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ._n with_o these_o material_a difference_n they_o join_v another_o that_o consist_v more_o in_o word_n whether_o obedience_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o faith_n the_o reformer_n say_v it_o certain_o accompany_v and_o follow_v faith_n but_o think_v not_o fit_a to_o make_v it_o a_o ingredient_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n have_v be_v now_o much_o canvas_v in_o dispute_n and_o it_o be_v think_v by_o many_o that_o man_n of_o ill_a life_n make_v no_o good_a use_n of_o some_o of_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o reformer_n that_o separate_a faith_n from_o good_a work_n and_o come_v to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o if_o they_o can_v but_o attain_v to_o a_o firm_a assurance_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n all_o will_v be_v well_o with_o they_o therefore_o now_o when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o state_n the_o true_a notion_n of_o faith_n cranmer_n command_v doctor_n redmayn_n who_o be_v esteem_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a divine_a of_o that_o time_n to_o write_v a_o short_a treatise_n on_o these_o head_n which_o he_o do_v with_o that_o solidity_n and_o clearness_n that_o it_o will_v sufficient_o justify_v any_o advantageous_a character_n that_o can_v be_v give_v of_o the_o author_n and_o according_a to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o treatise_n they_o lay_v down_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n thus_o that_o it_o stand_v in_o two_o several_a sense_n in_o scripture_n the_o one_o be_v a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n both_o of_o natural_a and_o reveal_v religion_n wrought_v in_o the_o mind_n by_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o other_o be_v such_o a_o belief_n as_o beget_v a_o submission_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o have_v hope_n love_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n join_v to_o it_o which_o be_v abraham_n faith_n and_o that_o which_o according_a to_o st._n paul_n wrought_v by_o charity_n and_o be_v so_o much_o commend_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o in_o baptism_n be_v profess_v from_o which_o christian_n be_v call_v the_o faithful_a and_o in_o those_o scripture_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n they_o declare_v we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o separate_a virtue_n from_o hope_n and_o charity_n fear_v of_o god_n and_o repentance_n but_o by_o it_o be_v mean_v faith_n neither_o only_o nor_o alone_o but_o with_o the_o foresay_a virtue_n couple_v together_o contain_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a the_o obedience_n to_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n and_o religion_n of_o christ._n 1539._o but_o for_o the_o definition_n of_o faith_n which_o some_o propose_v as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o certainty_n that_o one_o be_v predestinate_v they_o find_v nothing_o of_o it_o either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o doctor_n and_o think_v that_o can_v not_o be_v know_v for_o though_o god_n never_o fail_v in_o his_o promise_n to_o man_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o frailty_n of_o man_n that_o they_o often_o fail_v in_o their_o promise_n to_o god_n and_o so_o do_v forfeit_v their_o right_n to_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v all_o make_v upon_o condition_n that_o depend_v on_o we_o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o shall_v digress_v a_o little_a to_o show_v with_o what_o care_n cranmer_n consider_v so_o weighty_a a_o point_n it_o among_o his_o other_o paper_n i_o find_v a_o collection_n of_o a_o great_a many_o place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v justification_n by_o faith_n together_o with_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o quotation_n out_o of_o origen_n basil_n jerome_n theodoret_n ambrose_n austin_n prosper_n chrysostom_n gennadius_n beda_n hesychins_n theophylact_fw-mi and_o oecumenius_n together_o with_o many_o late_a writer_n such_o as_o anselm_n bernard_n peter_n lombard_n hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la lyranus_fw-la and_o bruno_n in_o which_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o author_n in_o this_o point_n do_v appear_v all_o draw_v out_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o this_o be_v add_v another_o collection_n of_o many_o place_n of_o the_o father_n in_o which_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a collection_n he_o write_v these_o word_n this_o proposition_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n only_o and_o not_o by_o our_o good_a work_n be_v a_o very_a true_a and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n teach_v by_o they_o to_o set_v forth_o thereby_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o christ._n and_o after_o some_o further_a discourse_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o conclude_v although_o all_o that_o be_v justify_v must_v of_o necessity_n have_v charity_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n yet_o neither_o faith_n nor_o charity_n be_v the_o worthiness_n nor_o merit_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v only_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n this_o i_o set_v down_o to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v that_o cranmer_n be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o those_o nicety_n which_o have_v be_v so_o much_o inquire_v into_o since_o that_o time_n about_o the_o instrumentality_n of_o faith_n in_o justification_n all_o that_o he_o then_o consider_v be_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o may_v be_v ascribe_v only_o to_o the_o death_n and_o intercession_n of_o jesus_n christ._n creed_n after_o this_o be_v thus_o lay_v down_o there_o follow_v a_o explanation_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n full_a of_o excellent_a matter_n be_v a_o large_a paraphrase_n on_o every_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n with_o such_o serious_a and_o practical_a inference_n that_o i_o must_v acknowledge_v after_o all_o the_o practical_a book_n we_o have_v have_v i_o find_v great_a edification_n in_o read_v that_o over_o and_o over_o again_o the_o style_n be_v strong_a nervous_a and_o well-fitted_n for_o the_o weak_a capacity_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o that_o be_v controvert_v between_o the_o papist_n and_o the_o reformer_n except_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n which_o they_o give_v thus_o that_o it_o comprehend_v all_o assembly_n of_o man_n over_o the_o
they_o to_o their_o heresy_n the_o number_n of_o which_o be_v too_o long_o to_o be_v repeat_v that_o have_v former_o abjure_v they_o be_v now_o incorrigible_a heretic_n and_o so_o be_v condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v or_o suffer_v any_o other_o death_n as_o shall_v please_v the_o king_n and_o two_o day_n after_o cromwel_n death_n be_v the_o 30_o of_o july_n they_o be_v bring_v to_o smithfield_n where_o in_o their_o execution_n there_o be_v as_o odd_a a_o mixture_n as_o have_v be_v in_o their_o attaindor_n for_o abel_n fetherston_n and_o powel_n that_o be_v attaint_v by_o another_o act_n of_o the_o same_o parliament_n for_o own_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o deny_v the_o king_n be_v carry_v to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n and_o couple_v with_o the_o other_o three_o so_o that_o one_o of_o each_o be_v put_v into_o a_o hurdle_n and_o carry_v together_o which_o every_o body_n condemn_v as_o a_o extravagant_a affectation_n of_o the_o show_n of_o impartial_a justice_n when_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o stake_n stake_n barnes_n speak_v thus_o to_o the_o people_n since_o he_o be_v to_o be_v burn_v as_o a_o heretic_n he_o will_v declare_v what_o opinion_n he_o hold_v so_o he_o enlarge_v on_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o show_v he_o believe_v they_o all_o he_o express_v a_o particular_a abhorrence_n of_o a_o opinion_n which_o some_o anabaptist_n hold_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v as_o a_o saffron_n bagg_n by_o which_o indecent_a simile_n they_o mean_v that_o our_o saviour_n take_v no_o substance_n of_o she_o he_o explain_v his_o opinion_n of_o good_a work_n that_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v do_v since_o without_o they_o none_o shall_v ever_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o be_v command_v of_o god_n to_o show_v forth_o our_o profession_n by_o they_o but_o he_o believe_v as_o they_o be_v not_o pure_a nor_o perfect_a so_o they_o do_v not_o avail_v to_o our_o justification_n nor_o merit_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ._n he_o profess_v great_a reverence_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o saint_n but_o say_v he_o see_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o pray_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v it_o certain_a whether_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o or_o not_o but_o if_o the_o saint_n do_v pray_v for_o those_o on_o earth_n he_o trust_v within_o half_a a_o hour_n to_o be_v pray_v for_o they_o all_o then_o he_o ask_v the_o sheriff_n if_o he_o have_v any_o article_n against_o they_o for_o which_o they_o be_v condemn_v who_o answer_v he_o have_v none_o he_o next_o ask_v the_o people_n if_o they_o know_v wherefore_o he_o die_v or_o if_o they_o have_v be_v lead_v into_o any_o error_n by_o his_o preach_a but_o none_o make_v answer_v then_o he_o say_v he_o hear_v he_o be_v condemn_v to_o die_v by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v for_o heresy_n since_o they_o be_v to_o be_v burn_v he_o pray_v god_n to_o forgive_v those_o who_o have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o it_o and_o in_o particular_a for_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n if_o he_o have_v seek_v or_o procure_v his_o death_n he_o pray_v god_n hearty_o to_o forgive_v he_o as_o christ_n forgive_v his_o murderer_n he_o pray_v earnest_o for_o the_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n and_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o he_o say_v some_o have_v report_v that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o preacher_n of_o sedition_n and_o disobedience_n but_o he_o declare_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o obey_v their_o king_n law_n with_o all_o humility_n not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o for_o conscience_n add_v that_o if_o the_o king_n command_v any_o thing_n against_o god_n law_n though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o resist_v he_o yet_o they_o may_v not_o do_v it_o then_o he_o desire_v the_o sheriff_n to_o carry_v five_o request_n from_o he_o to_o the_o king_n first_o that_o since_o he_o have_v take_v the_o abbey-land_n into_o his_o hand_n for_o which_o he_o do_v not_o blame_v he_o as_o the_o sheriff_n fancy_v he_o be_v about_o to_o do_v and_o thereupon_o stop_v he_o but_o be_v glad_a that_o superstition_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v then_o a_o complete_a king_n obey_v by_o all_o his_o subject_n which_o have_v be_v do_v through_o the_o preach_a of_o they_o and_o such_o wretch_n as_o they_o be_v yet_o he_o wish_v the_o king_n will_v bestow_v these_o good_n or_o some_o of_o they_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o poor_a subject_n who_o have_v great_a need_n of_o they_o second_o that_o marriage_n may_v be_v have_v in_o great_a esteem_n and_o that_o man_n may_v not_o upon_o light_a pretence_n cast_v off_o their_o wife_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v unmarried_a may_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v in_o whoredom_n three_o that_o abominable_a swearer_n may_v be_v punish_v four_o that_o since_o the_o king_n have_v begin_v to_o set_v forth_o christian_a religion_n he_o will_v go_v forward_o in_o it_o and_o make_v a_o end_n for_o though_o he_o have_v do_v a_o great_a deal_n yet_o many_o thing_n remain_v to_o be_v do_v and_o he_o wish_v that_o the_o king_n may_v not_o be_v deceive_v with_o false_a teacher_n the_o five_o desire_n he_o say_v he_o have_v forget_v then_o he_o beg_v that_o they_o all_o will_v forgive_v he_o if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o have_v say_v or_o do_v evil_a unadvised_o and_o so_o turn_v about_o and_o prepare_v himself_o for_o his_o death_n jerome_n speak_v next_o and_o declare_v his_o faith_n upon_o every_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o also_o pray_v for_o the_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n and_o conclude_v with_o a_o very_a pathetical_a exhortation_n to_o mutual_a love_n and_o charity_n that_o they_o will_v propose_v to_o themselves_o the_o pattern_n of_o christ_n wonderful_a love_n through_o who_o only_o he_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v and_o desire_v all_o their_o prayer_n for_o himself_o and_o his_o brethren_n then_o gerard_n declare_v his_o faith_n and_o say_v that_o if_o through_o ignorance_n or_o negligence_n he_o have_v teach_v any_o error_n he_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o ask_v god_n pardon_v and_o they_o who_o he_o have_v thereby_o offend_v but_o he_o protest_v that_o according_a to_o his_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n he_o have_v always_o set_v forth_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o king_n law_n then_o they_o all_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o constancy_n and_o patience_n in_o their_o suffering_n and_o so_o they_o embrace_v and_o kiss_v one_o another_o and_o then_o the_o executioner_n tie_v they_o to_o the_o stake_n and_o set_v fire_n to_o they_o their_o death_n do_v rather_o encourage_v than_o dishearten_v their_o follower_n who_o see_v such_o a_o extraordinary_a measure_n of_o patience_n in_o they_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o their_o resolution_n of_o suffer_v for_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o for_o his_o name_n who_o do_v not_o forsake_v his_o servant_n in_o these_o cruel_a agony_n one_o difference_n between_o their_o suffering_n and_o the_o other_o three_o who_o be_v hang_v for_o assert_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v remarkable_a that_o though_o the_o other_o demean_v themselves_o towards_o they_o with_o the_o most_o uncharitable_a and_o spiteful_a malice_n that_o be_v possible_a so_o that_o their_o own_o historian_n say_v that_o their_o be_v carry_v with_o they_o to_o their_o execution_n be_v bitter_a to_o they_o than_o death_n itself_o yet_o they_o declare_v their_o hearty_a forgive_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o of_o gardener_n in_o particular_a who_o be_v general_o look_v on_o as_o the_o person_n that_o procure_v their_o death_n which_o imputation_n stick_v fast_o to_o he_o though_o by_o a_o print_a apology_n he_o study_v to_o clear_v himself_o of_o any_o other_o concernment_n in_o it_o than_o by_o give_v his_o vote_n for_o the_o act_n of_o their_o attaindor_n now_o bonner_n begin_v to_o show_v his_o nature_n cruelty_n hitherto_o he_o have_v act_v another_o part_n for_o be_v most_o extreme_o desirous_a of_o preferment_n he_o have_v so_o comply_v with_o cromwell_n and_o cranmer_n that_o they_o have_v great_a confidence_n in_o he_o and_o he_o be_v a_o bluster_a and_o forward_a man_n they_o think_v he_o may_v do_v the_o reformation_n good_a service_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v advance_v so_o high_a by_o their_o mean_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o cromwell_n fall_v the_o very_a next_o day_n he_o show_v his_o ingratitude_n and_o how_o nimble_o he_o turn_v with_o the_o wind._n for_o grafton_n the_o printer_n who_o cromwell_n favour_v much_o
the_o kingdom_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o churchman_n the_o bishop_n look_v more_o after_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o state_n than_o the_o concern_v of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v resolve_v to_o maintain_v by_o their_o cruelty_n what_o their_o predecessor_n have_v acquire_v by_o fraud_n and_o imposture_n and_o as_o lesly_n himself_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o pain_n take_v to_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o religion_n nor_o be_v the_o child_n at_o all_o catechise_v but_o leave_v in_o ignorance_n and_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v both_o covetous_a and_o lewd_a dispose_v the_o people_n to_o favour_v those_o that_o preach_v for_o a_o reformation_n the_o first_o that_o suffer_v in_o this_o age_n be_v patrick_n hamilton_n a_o person_n of_o very_a noble_a blood_n suffering_n his_o father_n be_v brother_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o arran_n and_o his_o mother_n sister_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o albany_n so_o near_o be_v he_o on_o both_o side_n relate_v to_o the_o king_n he_o be_v provide_v of_o the_o abbey_n of_o fern_n in_o his_o youth_n and_o be_v design_v for_o great_a preferment_n he_o be_v send_v to_o travel_v but_o as_o he_o go_v through_o germany_n he_o contract_v a_o friendship_n with_o luther_n melanction_n and_o other_o of_o their_o persuasion_n by_o who_o mean_n he_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o point_n about_o which_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o return_v to_o scotland_n that_o he_o may_v communicate_v that_o knowledge_n to_o other_o with_o which_o himself_o be_v so_o happy_o enlighten_v and_o little_o consider_v either_o the_o hindrance_n of_o his_o further_a preferment_n or_o the_o other_o danger_n that_o may_v lie_v in_o his_o way_n he_o spare_v not_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o corruption_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o show_v the_o error_n that_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o christian_a religion_n he_o be_v a_o man_n both_o of_o great_a learning_n and_o of_o a_o sweet_a and_o charm_a conversation_n and_o come_v to_o be_v follow_v and_o esteem_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n the_o clergy_n be_v enrage_v at_o this_o invite_v he_o to_o st._n andrews_n that_o there_o may_v be_v conference_n hold_v with_o he_o about_o those_o point_n which_o he_o condemn_v and_o one_o friar_n campbel_n prior_n of_o the_o dominican_n who_o have_v the_o reputation_n of_o a_o learned_a man_n be_v appoint_v to_o treat_v with_o he_o they_o have_v many_o conference_n together_o and_o the_o prior_n seem_v to_o be_v convince_v in_o most_o point_n and_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n that_o require_v reformation_n but_o all_o this_o while_n he_o be_v betray_v he_o so_o that_o when_o the_o abbot_n look_v for_o no_o such_o thing_n he_o be_v in_o the_o night_n time_n make_v prisoner_n and_o carry_v to_o the_o arch-bishop_n castle_n there_o several_a article_n be_v object_v to_o he_o about_o original_a sin_n freewill_n justification_n good_a work_n priestly_a absolution_n auricular_a confession_n purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n some_o of_o these_o he_o positive_o adhere_v to_o the_o other_o he_o think_v be_v disputable_a point_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o condemn_v they_o except_o he_o see_v better_a reason_n than_o any_o he_o have_v yet_o hear_v the_o matter_n be_v refer_v to_o 12_o divine_n of_o the_o university_n of_o who_o friar_n campbel_n be_v one_o and_o within_o a_o day_n or_o two_o they_o censure_v all_o his_o tenet_n as_o heretical_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o first_o of_o march_n judgement_n be_v give_v upon_o he_o by_o beaton_n archbishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n with_o who_o sit_v the_o archbishop_n of_o glasgow_n the_o bishop_n of_o dunkeld_n brichen_n and_o dunblan_n five_o abbot_n and_o many_o of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n they_o also_o make_v the_o whole_a university_n old_a and_o young_a sign_n it_o he_o be_v declare_v a_o obstinate_a heretic_n and_o deliver_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n the_o king_n have_v at_o that_o time_n go_v a_o pilgrimage_n to_o ross_n and_o the_o clergy_n fear_v lest_o nearness_n of_o blood_n with_o the_o intercession_n which_o may_v be_v make_v for_o he_o shall_v snatch_v this_o prey_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n proceed_v that_o same_o day_n to_o his_o execution_n so_o in_o the_o afternoon_n he_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o stake_n before_o st._n salvator_n college_n he_o strip_v himself_o of_o his_o garment_n and_o give_v they_o to_o his_o man_n and_o say_v he_o have_v no_o more_o to_o leave_v he_o but_o the_o example_n of_o his_o death_n that_o he_o pray_v he_o to_o keep_v in_o mind_n for_o though_o it_o be_v bitter_a and_o painful_a in_o man_n judgement_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o entrance_n to_o everlasting_a life_n which_o none_o can_v inherit_v that_o deny_v christ_n before_o such_o a_o congregation_n then_o be_v he_o tie_v to_o a_o stake_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o fuel_n be_v heap_v about_o he_o which_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o fear_v but_o continue_v lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o recommend_v his_o soul_n to_o god_n when_o the_o train_n of_o powder_n be_v kindle_v it_o do_v not_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o fuel_n but_o only_o scorch_v his_o hand_n and_o the_o side_n of_o his_o face_n this_o occasion_v some_o delay_n till_o more_o powder_n be_v bring_v from_o the_o castle_n during_o which_o time_n the_o friar_n be_v very_o troublesome_a and_o call_v to_o he_o to_o turn_v and_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n and_o say_v salve_fw-la regina_fw-la none_o be_v more_o officious_a than_o friar_n campbel_n the_o abbot_n wish_v he_o often_o to_o let_v he_o alone_o and_o give_v he_o no_o more_o trouble_v but_o the_o friar_n continue_v to_o importune_v he_o he_o say_v to_o he_o wicked_a man_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o be_o not_o a_o heretic_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n for_o which_o i_o now_o suffer_v so_o much_o thou_o do_v confess_v to_o i_o in_o private_a and_o thereupon_o i_o appeal_v thou_o to_o answer_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ._n by_o this_o time_n more_o powder_n be_v bring_v and_o the_o fire_n be_v kindle_v he_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n how_o long_o o_o lord_n shall_v darkness_n oppress_v this_o realm_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o suffer_v this_o tyranny_n of_o man_n and_o die_v repeat_v these_o word_n lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n the_o patience_n and_o constancy_n he_o express_v in_o his_o suffering_n make_v the_o spectator_n general_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v a_o true_a martyr_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o they_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v by_o friar_n campbell_n fall_v into_o great_a despair_n soon_o after_o who_o from_o that_o turn_v frantic_a and_o die_v within_o a_o year_n on_o this_o i_o have_v insist_v the_o more_o full_o because_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o reformation_n in_o scotland_n and_o raise_v there_o a_o humour_n of_o inquire_v into_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o do_v always_o prove_v fatal_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o university_n itself_o many_o be_v wrought_v on_o reformation_n and_o particular_o one_o seaton_n a_o dominican_n friar_n who_o be_v the_o king_n confessor_n he_o be_v appoint_v to_o preach_v the_o next_o lend_v at_o st._n andrews_n insist_v much_o on_o these_o point_n that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o righteousness_n that_o sin_n be_v only_o commit_v when_o god_n law_n be_v violate_v that_o no_o man_n can_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n and_o that_o pardon_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v by_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o true_a faith_n but_o he_o never_o mention_v purgatory_n pilgrimage_n merit_n nor_o prayer_n to_o saint_n which_o use_v to_o be_v the_o subject_n on_o which_o the_o friar_n insist_v most_o on_o these_o occasion_n be_v go_v from_o st._n andrews_n he_o hear_v that_o another_o friar_n of_o his_o own_o order_n have_v refute_v these_o doctrine_n so_o he_o return_v and_o confirm_v they_o in_o another_o sermon_n in_o which_o he_o also_o make_v some_o reflection_n on_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o teacher_n call_v they_o dumb-dog_n for_o this_o he_o be_v carry_v before_o the_o archbishop_n but_o he_o defend_v himself_o say_v that_o he_o have_v only_o in_o st._n paul_n word_n say_v a_o bishop_n shall_v teach_v and_o in_o esaias_n word_n that_o such_o as_o do_v not_o teach_v be_v dumb-dogg_n but_o have_v say_v this_o in_o the_o general_n he_o do_v not_o apply_v it_o to_o any_o bishop_n in_o particular_a the_o archbishop_n be_v nettle_v at_o this_o answer_n yet_o resolve_v to_o let_v he_o alone_o till_o he_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o disgrace_n with_o the_o king_n and_o that_o be_v soon_o do_v for_o the_o king_n be_v a_o licentious_a prince_n and_o friar_n seaton_n have_v
issue_v out_o a_o proclamation_n that_o all_o who_o have_v be_v aggrieve_v for_o want_n of_o justice_n by_o any_o who_o he_o have_v former_o employ_v shall_v come_v to_o he_o and_o his_o counsel_n for_o redress_n this_o be_v do_v to_o cast_v all_o past_a miscarrage_v on_o cromwell_n and_o to_o put_v the_o people_n in_o hope_n of_o better_a time_n but_o upon_o his_o return_n to_o london_n he_o meet_v with_o a_o new_a affliction_n he_o be_v so_o much_o take_v with_o his_o queen_n that_o on_o all-saint_n day_n when_o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n he_o open_o give_v god_n thanks_o for_o the_o good_a life_n he_o lead_v and_o trust_v still_o to_o lead_v with_o she_o and_o desire_v his_o ghostly_a father_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o same_o thanksgiuge_n to_o god_n but_o this_o joy_n last_v not_o long_o for_o the_o next_o day_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n come_v to_o he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o doleful_a account_n of_o the_o queen_n ill_a life_n as_o it_o have_v be_v bring_v he_o by_o one_o john_n lassels_n who_o when_o the_o king_n be_v in_o his_o progress_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o his_o sister_n who_o have_v be_v a_o old_a servant_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n under_o who_o care_n the_o queen_n be_v bring_v up_o say_v to_o he_o that_o the_o queen_n be_v lewd_a and_o that_o one_o francis_n deirham_n have_v enjoy_v she_o often_o as_o also_o one_o mannock_n with_o other_o foul_a circumstance_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v relate_v the_o archbishop_n communicate_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n and_o the_o other_o privy_a councillor_n that_o be_v at_o london_n they_o agree_v that_o the_o archbishop_n shall_v open_v it_o to_o the_o king_n but_o he_o not_o know_v how_o to_o do_v it_o in_o discourse_n set_v it_o down_o in_o writing_n and_o put_v it_o in_o the_o king_n hand_n when_o the_o king_n read_v it_o discover_v he_o seem_v much_o perplex_v but_o love_v the_o queen_n so_o tender_o that_o he_o look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o forgery_n and_o now_o the_o archbishop_n be_v in_o extreme_a danger_n for_o if_o full_a evidence_n have_v not_o be_v bring_v it_o have_v be_v certain_o turn_v on_o he_o to_o his_o ruin_n the_o king_n impart_v it_o to_o some_o other_o councillor_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o yet_o he_o will_v try_v it_o out_o but_o with_o all_o possible_a secrecty_n so_o the_o lord_n privy-seal_n be_v send_v to_o london_n to_o examine_v lassel_n who_o stand_v to_o what_o he_o have_v inform_v then_o he_o send_v that_o same_o lord_n into_o sussex_n where_o lassel_v sister_n live_v to_o try_v if_o she_o will_v justify_v what_o her_o brother_n have_v report_v in_o her_o name_n and_o she_o own_v it_o he_o order_v deirham_n and_o mannock_n to_o be_v arrest_v upon_o some_o other_o pretence_n but_o they_o be_v examine_v not_o only_o confess_v what_o be_v inform_v but_o reveal_v some_o other_o circumstance_n that_o show_v the_o queen_n have_v lay_v aside_o all_o sense_n of_o modesty_n as_o well_o as_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o discovery_n three_o several_a woman_n have_v be_v witness_n to_o these_o her_o lewd_a practice_n the_o report_n of_o that_o strike_v the_o king_n into_o a_o most_o profound_a pensiveness_n and_o he_o burst_v out_o into_o tear_n and_o lament_v his_o misfortune_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o some_o other_o counsellor_n be_v send_v to_o examine_v the_o queen_n she_o at_o first_o deny_v every_o thing_n but_o when_o she_o perceive_v it_o be_v already_o know_v other_o she_o confess_v all_o and_o set_v it_o under_o her_o hand_n there_o be_v also_o evident_a presumption_n that_o she_o have_v intend_v to_o continue_v that_o course_n of_o life_n for_o as_o she_o have_v get_v deirham_n into_o her_o service_n so_o she_o have_v bring_v one_o of_o the_o woman_n who_o have_v be_v former_o privy_a to_o their_o familiarity_n to_o serve_v about_o her_o bedchamber_n one_o culpeper_n be_v also_o charge_v upon_o vehement_a suspicion_n for_o when_o the_o king_n be_v at_o lincoln_n by_o the_o lady_n rochfords_n mean_v he_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o queen_n chamber_n at_o 11_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o night_n and_o stay_v there_o till_o four_o the_o next_o morning_n the_o queen_n also_o give_v he_o a_o gold_n chain_n and_o a_o rich_a cap._n he_o be_v examine_v confess_v the_o crime_n for_o which_o both_o deirham_n and_o he_o suffer_v other_o be_v also_o indict_v of_o misprision_n of_o treason_n and_o condemn_v to_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n but_o this_o occasion_v a_o new_a parliament_n to_o be_v summon_v on_o the_o 16_o of_o january_n the_o parliament_n meet_v to_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o westminster_n 1542._o chester_n peterborough_n and_o gloucester_n have_v their_o writ_n the_o lord_n cromwell_n also_o have_v his_o writ_n call_v though_o i_o do_v not_o find_v by_o any_o record_n that_o he_o be_v restore_v in_o blood_n on_o the_o 28_o of_o january_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n move_v the_o house_n of_o lord_n to_o consider_v the_o case_n the_o king_n be_v in_o by_o the_o queen_n ill_a carriage_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o ground_n of_o suspicion_n or_o complaint_n he_o propose_v that_o some_o of_o their_o number_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o examine_v the_o queen_n whereupon_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n the_o earl_n of_o southampton_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o westminster_n be_v send_v to_o she_o how_o much_o she_o confess_v to_o they_o be_v not_o very_o clear_a neither_o by_o the_o journal_n nor_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o only_o say_v that_o she_o confess_v without_o mention_v the_o particular_n upon_o this_o the_o process_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v former_o attaint_v be_v also_o bring_v as_o a_o evidence_n the_o act_n pass_v in_o both_o house_n in_o it_o they_o petition_v the_o king_n first_o not_o to_o be_v trouble_v at_o the_o matter_n since_o 1542._o that_o may_v be_v a_o mean_a to_o shorten_v his_o life_n second_o queen_n to_o pardon_v every_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v speak_v against_o the_o queen_n three_o that_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o complice_n may_v be_v attaint_v of_o high_a treason_n for_o her_o take_v deirham_n into_o her_o service_n and_o another_o woman_n into_o her_o chamber_n who_o have_v know_v their_o former_a ill_a life_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v what_o she_o intend_v to_o do_v and_o then_o admit_v culpeper_n to_o be_v so_o long_o with_o she_o in_o a_o vile_a place_n so_o many_o hour_n in_o the_o night_n therefore_o it_o be_v desire_v that_o she_o and_o they_o with_o the_o bawd_n the_o lady_n rochfort_n may_v be_v attaint_v of_o treason_n and_o that_o the_o queen_n and_o the_o lady_n rochfort_n shall_v suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o death_n four_o that_o the_o king_n will_v not_o trouble_v himself_o to_o give_v his_o assent_n to_o this_o act_n in_o his_o own_o person_n but_o grant_v it_o by_o his_o letter_n patent_n under_o his_o hand_n and_o great_a seal_n five_o that_o the_o duchess_n dowager_n of_o norfolk_n countess_z of_o bridgwater_n the_o lord_n william_n howard_n and_o his_o lady_n and_o four_o other_o man_n and_o five_o woman_n who_o be_v already_o attaint_v by_o the_o course_n of_o common_a law_n except_o the_o duchess_n of_o norfolk_n and_o the_o countess_n of_o bridgwater_n that_o know_v the_o queen_n vicious_a life_n and_o have_v conceal_v it_o shall_v be_v all_o attaint_v of_o misprision_n of_o treason_n it_o be_v also_o enact_v that_o whosoever_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o incontinence_n of_o the_o queen_n for_o the_o time_n be_v shall_v reveal_v it_o with_o all_o possible_a speed_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o treason_n and_o that_o if_o the_o king_n or_o his_o successor_n shall_v intend_v to_o marry_v any_o woman_n who_o they_o take_v to_o be_v a_o pure_a and_o clean_a maid_n if_o she_o not_o be_v so_o do_v not_o declare_v the_o same_o to_o the_o king_n it_o shall_v be_v high_a treason_n and_o all_o who_o know_v it_o and_o do_v not_o reveal_v it_o be_v guilty_a of_o misprision_n of_o treason_n and_o if_o the_o queen_n or_o the_o prince_n wife_n shall_v procure_v any_o by_o message_n or_o word_n to_o know_v she_o carnal_o or_o any_o other_o by_o message_n or_o word_n shall_v solicit_v they_o they_o their_o councillor_n and_o abettor_n be_v to_o be_v adjudge_v high_a traitor_n this_o act_n be_v assent_v to_o by_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n the_o queen_n and_o the_o lady_n rochfort_n uponit_a be_v behead_v on_o tower-hill_n the_o 12_o of_o february_n the_o queen_n confess_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o her_o former_a life_n before_o the_o king_n marry_v she_o but_o stand_v absolute_o to_o her_o denial_n as_o to_o any_o thing_n after_o that_o and_o protest_v to_o dr._n white_a afterward_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n that_o she_o take_v god_n and_o his_o angel_n
to_o be_v her_o witness_n upon_o the_o salvation_n of_o her_o soul_n that_o she_o be_v guiltless_a of_o that_o act_n of_o defile_v her_o sovereign_n bed_n for_o which_o she_o be_v condemn_v yet_o the_o lasciviousness_n of_o her_o former_a life_n make_v people_n incline_v to_o believe_v any_o ill_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v report_v of_o she_o but_o for_o the_o lady_n rochfort_n every_o body_n observe_v god_n justice_n on_o she_o who_o have_v the_o chief_a hand_n both_o in_o queen_n anne_n boleyns_n and_o her_o own_o husband_n death_n and_o it_o now_o appear_v so_o evident_o what_o sort_n of_o woman_n she_o be_v it_o tend_v much_o to_o raise_v their_o reputation_n again_o in_o who_o fall_n her_o spite_n and_o other_o artifices_fw-la have_v so_o great_a a_o hand_n she_o have_v be_v a_o lady_n of_o the_o bedchamber_n to_o the_o last_o four_o queen_n but_o now_o it_o be_v find_v how_o unworthy_a she_o be_v of_o that_o trust._n it_o be_v think_v extreme_a cruelty_n to_o be_v so_o severe_a to_o the_o queen_n kindred_n for_o not_o discover_v her_o former_a ill_a life_n since_o the_o make_n such_o a_o discovery_n have_v be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o rule_n of_o justice_n or_o decency_n the_o old_a duchess_n of_o norfolk_n be_v her_o grandmother_n have_v breed_v she_o of_o a_o child_n and_o it_o be_v say_v for_o she_o to_o have_v go_v and_o tell_v the_o king_n that_o she_o be_v a_o whore_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o marry_v she_o as_o it_o be_v a_o unheard-of_a thing_n so_o the_o not-doing_a of_o it_o can_v not_o have_v draw_v so_o severe_a a_o punishment_n from_o any_o but_o a_o prince_n of_o that_o king_n temper_n but_o the_o king_n pardon_v she_o and_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n though_o some_o continue_v in_o prison_n after_o the_o rest_n be_v discharge_v but_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o this_o act_n oblige_v a_o woman_n to_o reveal_v she_o own_o former_a incontinence_n if_o the_o king_n intend_v to_o marry_v she_o which_o by_o a_o mistake_v the_o lord_n herbert_n say_v be_v pass_v in_o another_o act_n take_v it_o from_o hall_n and_o not_o look_v into_o the_o record_n it_o be_v think_v a_o piece_n of_o grievous_a tyranny_n since_o if_o a_o king_n especial_o one_o of_o so_o imperious_a a_o temper_n as_o this_o be_v shall_v design_n such_o a_o honour_n to_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n who_o have_v fail_v in_o their_o former_a life_n they_o must_v either_o defame_v themselves_o by_o publish_v so_o disgraceful_a a_o secret_a or_o run_v the_o hazard_n of_o be_v afterward_o attaint_v of_o treason_n upon_o this_o those_o that_o take_v a_o indiscreet_a liberty_n to_o rally_v that_o sex_n injust_o and_o severe_o say_v the_o king_n can_v induce_v none_o that_o be_v repute_v a_o maid_n to_o marry_v he_o so_o that_o not_o so_o much_o choice_n as_o necessity_n put_v he_o on_o marry_v a_o widow_n about_o two_o year_n after_o this_o but_o this_o part_n of_o the_o act_n be_v afterward_o repeal_v in_o the_o first_o parliament_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o 6_o there_o pass_v another_o act_n in_o this_o parliament_n that_o make_v way_n for_o the_o dissolution_n of_o college_n etc._n hospital_n and_o other_o foundation_n of_o that_o nature_n the_o courtier_n have_v be_v practise_v with_o the_o precedent_n and_o governor_n of_o some_o of_o these_o to_o make_v resignation_n of_o they_o to_o the_o king_n which_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o same_o stile_n that_o most_o of_o the_o surrender_n of_o monastery_n do_v run_v in_o eight_o of_o these_o be_v all_o real_o procure_v which_o be_v enroll_v but_o they_o can_v not_o make_v any_o great_a progress_n because_o it_o be_v provide_v by_o the_o local_a statute_n of_o most_o of_o they_o that_o no_o precedent_n or_o any_o other_o fellow_n can_v make_v any_o such_o deed_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o fellow_n in_o the_o house_n and_o this_o can_v not_o be_v so_o easy_o obtain_v therefore_o all_o such_o statute_n be_v annul_v and_o none_o be_v any_o more_o to_o be_v swear_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o bible_n in_o the_o convocation_n that_o sit_v at_o that_o time_n which_o as_o be_v former_o observe_v fuller_n mistake_v for_o the_o convocation_n in_o the_o 31st_o year_n of_o this_o king_n the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v bring_v under_o examination_n and_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v to_o peruse_v it_o for_o it_o seem_v complaint_n be_v bring_v against_o it_o it_o be_v certain_o the_o great_a eyesore_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n and_o that_o which_o they_o know_v will_v most_o effectual_o beat_v down_o all_o their_o project_n but_o there_o be_v no_o oppose_v it_o direct_o for_o the_o king_n be_v full_o resolve_v to_o go_v through_o with_o it_o therefore_o the_o way_n they_o take_v be_v once_o to_o load_v the_o translation_n than_o set_v out_o with_o as_o many_o fault_n as_o they_o can_v and_o so_o to_o get_v it_o first_o condemn_v and_o then_o to_o promise_v a_o new_a one_o in_o the_o make_n and_o publish_v of_o which_o it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o breed_v many_o delay_n but_o gardiner_n have_v another_o singular_a conceit_n he_o fancy_v there_o be_v many_o word_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o such_o majesty_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v but_o must_v stand_v in_o the_o english_a bible_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a a_o hundred_o of_o these_o he_o put_v into_o a_o write_n which_o be_v read_v in_o convocation_n his_o design_n in_o this_o be_v visible_a that_o if_o a_o translation_n must_v be_v make_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o daub_v all_o through_o with_o latin_a word_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o understand_v it_o much_o the_o better_a for_o its_o be_v in_o english_a a_o taste_n of_o this_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v by_o the_o first_o twenty_o of_o they_o eccl●sia_n penitentia_fw-la pontifex_fw-la ancilla_n contritus_fw-la olocausta_fw-la jus●itia_fw-la justi●icatio_fw-la idiota_fw-la el●menta_fw-la baptizare_fw-la martyr_n adorare_fw-la sandalium_n simplex_n tetrarcha_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la simulachrum_fw-la gloria_fw-la the_o design_n he_o have_v of_o keep_v some_o of_o these_o particular_o the_o last_o save_v one_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o discover_v that_o visible_a opposition_n which_o be_v between_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o image_n this_o can_v not_o be_v better_o palliate_v than_o by_o disguise_v these_o place_n with_o word_n that_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o how_o this_o be_v receive_v full●r_n have_v not_o tell_v we_o but_o it_o seem_v cranmer_n find_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v resolve_v either_o to_o condemn_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o to_o proceed_v so_o slow_o in_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o nothing_o therefore_o he_o move_v the_o king_n to_o refer_v the_o peruse_n of_o it_o to_o the_o two_o university_n the_o bishop_n take_v this_o very_a ill_n when_o cranmer_n intimate_v it_o to_o they_o in_o the_o king_n name_n and_o object_v that_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o university_n be_v much_o decay_v of_o late_a and_o that_o the_o two_o house_n of_o convocation_n be_v the_o more_o proper_a judge_n of_o that_o where_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o land_n be_v chief_o gather_v together_o but_o the_o archbishop_n say_v he_o will_v stick_v close_o to_o the_o king_n pleasure_n and_o that_o the_o university_n shall_v examine_v it_o upon_o which_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n except_o ely_n and_o st._n david_n protest_v against_o it_o and_o soon_o after_o the_o convocation_n be_v dissolve_v not_o long_o after_o this_o i_o find_v bonner_n make_v some_o injunction_n for_o his_o clergy_n which_o have_v a_o strain_n in_o they_o injunction_n so_o far_o different_a from_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o life_n that_o it_o be_v more_o probable_a they_o be_v draw_v by_o another_o pen_n and_o impose_v on_o bonner_n by_o a_o order_n from_o the_o king_n they_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o 34th_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n but_o the_o time_n of_o the_o year_n be_v not_o express_v the_o reader_n will_v find_v they_o in_o the_o collection_n at_o their_o full_a length_n the_o substance_n of_o they_o be_v first_o that_o all_o shall_v observe_v the_o king_n injunction_n second_o 26._o that_o every_o clergyman_n shall_v read_v and_o study_v a_o chapter_n of_o the_o bible_n every_o day_n with_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o gloss_n or_o some_o approve_a doctor_n which_o have_v once_o study_v they_o shall_v retain_v it_o in_o their_o memory_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o it_o to_o he_o or_o any_o who_o he_o shall_v appoint_v three_o that_o they_o shall_v study_v the_o book_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n four_o that_o such_o as_o do_v not_o reside_v in_o their_o
with_o the_o french_a king_n the_o very_a next_o day_n be_v the_o 19_o of_o september_n which_o be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a by_o the_o lord_n herbert_n on_o the_o 30_o of_o september_n the_o king_n return_v into_o england_n in_o october_n follow_v bulloign_n be_v very_o near_o lose_v by_o a_o surprise_n but_o the_o garrison_n put_v themselves_o in_o order_n and_o beat_v back_o the_o french_a several_a inroad_n be_v make_v into_o scotland_n but_o not_o with_o the_o same_o success_n that_o the_o former_a expedition_n have_v for_o the_o scot_n animate_v with_o supply_n send_v from_o france_n and_o in●●amed_v with_o a_o desire_n of_o revenge_n resume_v their_o wont_a courage_n and_o beat_v back_o the_o english_a with_o considerable_a loss_n next_o year_n the_o french_a king_n resolve_v to_o recover_v bulloign_n and_o to_o take_v calais_n 1545._o that_o so_o he_o may_v drive_v the_o english_a out_o of_o france_n intend_v first_o to_o make_v himself_o master_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o he_o set_v out_o a_o great_a fleet_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o great_a ship_n and_o sixty_o lesser_a one_o beside_o many_o galley_n bring_v from_o the_o straits_n the_o king_n set_v out_o about_o a_o hundred_o ship_n on_o both_o side_n these_o be_v only_a merchant_n ship_n that_o be_v hire_v for_o this_o war._n but_o after_o the_o french_a fleet_n have_v look_v on_o england_n and_o attempt_v to_o land_n with_o ill_a success_n both_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n and_o in_o sussex_n and_o have_v engage_v in_o a_o sea-fight_n for_o some_o hour_n they_o return_v back_o without_o any_o considerable_a action_n nor_o do_v they_o any_o thing_n at_o land_n but_o the_o king_n fleet_n go_v to_o normandy_n where_o they_o make_v a_o descent_n and_o burn_v the_o country_n so_o that_o this_o year_n be_v likewise_o glorious_a to_o the_o king_n the_o emperor_n have_v now_o do_v what_o he_o long_o design_v and_o therefore_o be_v court_v by_o both_o crown_n he_o undertake_v a_o mediation_n that_o under_o the_o colour_n of_o mediate_a a_o peace_n he_o may_v the_o more_o effectual_o keep_v up_o the_o war._n the_o prince_n of_o germany_n see_v what_o mischief_n be_v design_v against_o they_o peace_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v now_o open_v and_o be_v condemn_v their_o doctrine_n a_o league_n be_v also_o conclude_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n for_o procure_v obedience_n to_o their_o canon_n and_o decree_n and_o a_o army_n be_v raise_v the_o emperor_n be_v also_o set_v on_o foot_n old_a quarrel_n with_o some_o of_o the_o prince_n a_o firm_a peace_n be_v conclude_v with_o the_o turk_n so_o that_o if_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o france_n be_v not_o bring_v to_o a_o agreement_n they_o be_v undo_v they_o send_v ambassador_n to_o both_o court_n to_o mediate_v a_o peace_n with_o they_o cranmer_n join_v his_o endeavour_n but_o he_o have_v not_o a_o cromwell_n in_o the_o court_n to_o manage_v the_o king_n temper_n who_o be_v so_o provoke_v with_o the_o ill_a treatment_n he_o have_v receive_v from_o france_n that_o he_o will_v not_o come_v to_o a_o agreement_n nor_o will_v he_o restore_v bulloign_n without_o which_o the_o 〈◊〉_d wo●ld_v hear_v of_o no_o peace_n cranmer_z have_v at_o this_o time_n almost_o prevail_v with_o the_o king_n to_o make_v some_o further_a step_n in_o a_o reformati●●_n but_o 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v then_o ambassador_n in_o the_o emperor_n co●●●_n be_v advertise_v of_o it_o write_v to_o the_o king_n that_o the_o emperor_n ●ould_v certain_o join_v with_o france_n against_o he_o if_o he_o make_v any_o further_a innovation_n in_o religion_n this_o divert_v the_o king_n from_o it_o and_o in_o august_n this_o year_n the_o only_a great_a friend_n that_o cranmer_n have_v in_o the_o court_n die_v charles_n duke_z of_o su●●●lk_n who_o have_v long_o continue_v in_o the_o height_n of_o favour_n which_o be_v always_o keep_v up_o not_o only_o by_o a_o agreement_n of_o humour_n between_o the_o king_n and_o he_o but_o by_o the_o constant_a success_n which_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o his_o exploit_n he_o be_v a_o favourer_n of_o the_o reformation_n as_o far_o as_o can_v consist_v with_o his_o interest_n at_o court_n which_o he_o never_o endanger_v upon_o any_o account_n now_o cranmer_n be_v leave_v alone_o without_o friend_n or_o support_v yet_o he_o have_v gain_v one_o great_a preferment_n in_o the_o church_n to_o a_o man_n of_o his_o own_o mind_n the_o archbishopric_n of_o york_n fall_v void_a by_o lee_n death_n informer_n robert_n alrich_n that_o be_v bishop_n of_o landaff_n be_v promote_v to_o that_o see_v in_o january_n kitchen_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o landaff_n who_o turn_v with_o every_o change_n that_o be_v make_v under_o the_o three_o succeed_a prince_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n set_v about_o the_o reform_n of_o thing_n in_o his_o province_n which_o have_v lie_v in_o great_a confusion_n all_o his_o predecessor_n time_n so_o on_o the_o three_o of_o march_n he_o take_v out_o a_o licence_n from_o the_o king_n for_o make_v a_o metropolitical_a visitation_n dell_n that_o be_v bishop_n of_o worc●st●r_n have_v resign_v his_o bishopric_n the_o former_a year_n the_o reason_n of_o which_o be_v not_o set_v down_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n heath_n be_v translate_v to_o that_o see_v and_o henry_n holbeach_n that_o favour_v the_o reformation_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o upon_o the_o translation_n of_o samson_n from_o chichester_n to_o coventry_n and_o litchfield_n day_n that_o be_v a_o moderate_a man_n and_o inclinable_a to_o reformation_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o that_o see_n so_o that_o now_o cranmer_n have_v a_o great_a party_n among_o the_o bishop_n than_o at_o any_o time_n before_o but_o though_o there_o be_v no_o great_a transaction_n about_o religion_n in_o england_n this_o year_n there_o be_v very_o remarkable_a thing_n do_v in_o scotland_n though_o of_o a_o different_a nature_n which_o be_v the_o burn_a of_o wishart_n and_o some_o month_n after_o that_o the_o kill_n of_o cardinal_n beaton_n the_o account_n of_o both_o which_o will_v not_o i_o hope_v be_v ingrateful_a to_o the_o reader_n mr._n george_n wishart_n be_v descend_v of_o a_o noble_a family_n he_o go_v to_o finish_v his_o study_n in_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n where_o he_o be_v so_o well_o instruct_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o true_a religion_n s●●●land_n that_o return_v to_o scotland_n anno_fw-la 1544._o he_o preach_v over_o the_o country_n against_o the_o corruption_n which_o do_v then_o so_o general_o prevail_v he_o stay_v most_o at_o dundee_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a town_n in_o th●se_a part_n but_o the_o cardinal_n offend_v at_o this_o send_v a_o threaten_a message_n to_o the_o magistrate_n upon_o which_o one_o of_o they_o as_o wishart_n end_v one_o of_o his_o sermon_n spotswood_n be_v so_o obsequious_a as_o to_o forbid_v he_o to_o preach_v any_o more_o among_o they_o or_o give_v they_o any_o further_a trouble_n to_o who_o he_o answer_v that_o god_n know_v he_o have_v no_o design_n to_o trouble_v they_o but_o for_o they_o to_o reject_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o escape_v trouble_n when_o he_o be_v go_v god_n will_v send_v messenger_n of_o another_o sort_n among_o they_o he_o have_v to_o the_o hazard_n of_o his_o life_n preach_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v now_o reject_v he_o but_o if_o it_o be_v long_o well_o with_o they_o he_o be_v not_o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o unlooked_a for_o trouble_v fell_a on_o they_o he_o bid_v they_o remember_v this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o and_o turn_v to_o god_n by_o repentance_n from_o thence_o he_o go_v to_o the_o western_a part_n where_o he_o be_v also_o much_o follow_v but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o glasgow_n give_v order_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o preach_v in_o church_n he_o preach_v often_o in_o the_o field_n and_o when_o in_o some_o place_n his_o follower_n will_v have_v force_v the_o church_n he_o check_v they_o and_o say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o peace_n that_o he_o preach_v and_o therefore_o no_o blood_n shall_v be_v shed_v about_o it_o but_o after_o he_o have_v stay_v a_o month_n there_o he_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a plague_n in_o dundee_n which_o break_v out_o the_o four_o day_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v it_o upon_o which_o he_o present_o return_v thither_o and_o preach_v oft_o to_o they_o stand_v over_o one_o of_o the_o gate_n have_v take_v care_n that_o the_o infect_a person_n shall_v stand_v without_o and_o those_o that_o be_v clean_o within_o the_o gate_n he_o continue_v among_o they_o and_o take_v care_n to_o supply_v the_o poor_a and_o to_o visit_v the_o sick_a and_o do_v all_o the_o office_n of_o a_o faithful_a pastor_n in_o that_o extremity_n once_o as_o he_o end_v his_o
pass_v that_o he_o be_v believe_v a_o prophet_n as_o well_o as_o a_o saint_n and_o the_o reformation_n be_v now_o so_o much_o open_v by_o his_o preach_v and_o that_o be_v so_o confirm_v by_o his_o death_n that_o the_o nation_n be_v general_o possess_v with_o the_o love_n of_o it_o the_o nobility_n be_v mighty_o offend_v with_o the_o cardinal_n and_o say_v wisharts_n death_n be_v no_o less_o than_o murder_n since_o the_o clergy_n without_o a_o warrant_n from_o the_o secular_a power_n can_v dispose_v of_o no_o man_n life_n so_o it_o come_v universal_o to_o be_v say_v that_o he_o now_o deserve_v to_o die_v by_o the_o law_n yet_o since_o he_o be_v too_o great_a for_o a_o legal_a trial_n the_o kingdom_n be_v under_o the_o feeble_a government_n of_o a_o regency_n it_o be_v fit_a private_a person_n shall_v undertake_v it_o and_o it_o be_v give_v out_o that_o the_o kill_v a_o usurper_n be_v always_o esteem_v a_o commendable_a action_n and_o so_o in_o that_o state_n of_o thing_n they_o think_v secret_a practice_n may_v be_v justify_v this_o agree_v so_o much_o with_o the_o temper_n of_o some_o in_o that_o nation_n who_o have_v too_o much_o of_o the_o heat_n and_o forwardness_n of_o their_o country_n a_o few_o gentleman_n of_o quality_n who_o have_v be_v ill_o use_v by_o the_o cardinal_n conspire_v his_o death_n he_o be_v become_v general_o hateful_a to_o the_o whole_a nation_n and_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o bastard_n daughter_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o crawford_n elder_a son_n enrage_v the_o nobility_n the_o more_o against_o he_o and_o his_o carriage_n towards_o they_o all_o be_v insolent_a and_o provoke_a these_o offend_a gentleman_n come_v to_o st._n andrews_n the_o 29_o of_o may_n and_o the_o next_o morning_n they_o and_o their_o attendant_n be_v but_o twelve_o in_o all_o first_o attempt_v the_o gate_n of_o his_o castle_n which_o they_o find_v open_a and_o make_v it_o sure_o and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o few_o than_o a_o hundred_o reckon_v to_o be_v within_o the_o castle_n yet_o they_o know_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o house_n go_v with_o very_o little_a noise_n to_z the_o servants_z chamber_n and_o turn_v they_o almost_o all_o out_o of_o door_n and_o have_v thus_o make_v the_o castle_n sure_a they_o go_v to_o the_o cardinal_n door_n he_o who_o till_o then_o be_v fast_o asleep_a suspect_v nothing_o perceive_v at_o last_o by_o their_o rudeness_n that_o they_o be_v not_o his_o friend_n and_o make_v his_o door_n fast_o against_o they_o so_o they_o send_v for_o fire_n to_o set_v to_o it_o upon_o which_o he_o treat_v with_o they_o and_o upon_o assurance_n of_o life_n he_o open_v the_o door_n but_o they_o rush_v in_o do_v most_o cruel_o and_o treacherous_o murder_v he_o a_o tumult_n be_v raise_v in_o the_o town_n and_o many_o of_o his_o friend_n come_v to_o rescue_v he_o but_o the_o conspirator_n carry_v the_o dead_a body_n and_o expose_v it_o to_o their_o view_n in_o the_o same_o window_n out_o of_o which_o he_o have_v not_o long_o before_o look_v on_o when_o wishart_n be_v burn_v which_o have_v be_v universal_o censure_v as_o a_o most_o indecent_a thing_n in_o a_o churchman_n to_o delight_v in_o such_o a_o spectacle_n but_o those_o who_o condemn_v this_o action_n yet_o acknowledge_v god_n justice_n in_o so_o exemplary_a a_o punishment_n and_o reflect_v on_o wisharts_n last_o word_n be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o the_o opinion_n they_o have_v of_o his_o sanctity_n this_o fact_n be_v different_o censure_v some_o justify_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v only_o the_o kill_n of_o a_o mighty_a robber_n other_o that_o be_v glad_a he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n yet_o condemn_v the_o manner_n of_o it_o as_o treacherous_a and_o inhuman_a and_o though_o some_o of_o the_o preacher_n do_v afterward_o fly_v to_o that_o castle_n as_o a_o sanctuary_n yet_o none_o of_o they_o be_v either_o actor_n or_o consenter_n to_o it_o it_o be_v true_a they_o do_v general_o extenuate_v it_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o any_o of_o they_o justify_v it_o the_o exemplary_a and_o signal_n end_v of_o almost_o all_o the_o conspirator_n scarce_o any_o of_o they_o die_v a_o ordinary_a death_n make_v all_o people_n the_o more_o incline_v to_o condemn_v it_o the_o day_n after_o the_o cardinal_n be_v kill_v about_o 140_o come_v into_o the_o castle_n and_o prepare_v for_o a_o siege_n the_o house_n be_v well_o furnish_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a and_o it_o lie_v so_o near_o the_o sea_n they_o expect_v help_v from_o king_n henry_n to_o who_o they_o send_v a_o messenger_n for_o his_o assistance_n and_o declare_v for_o he_o so_o a_o siege_n follow_v they_o be_v so_o well_o supply_v from_o england_n that_o after_o five_o month_n the_o governor_n be_v glad_a to_o treat_v with_o they_o apprehend_v much_o the_o foot_n the_o english_a may_v have_v if_o those_o within_o be_v drive_v to_o extremity_n shall_v receive_v a_o garrison_n from_o king_n henry_n they_o have_v the_o governor_n also_o more_o at_o their_o mercy_n for_o as_o the_o cardinal_n have_v take_v his_o elder_a son_n into_o his_o house_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o educate_v he_o but_o real_o as_o his_o father_n hostage_n design_v likewise_o to_o infuse_v in_o he_o a_o violent_a hatred_n of_o the_o new_a preacher_n so_o the_o conspirator_n find_v he_o in_o the_o castle_n keep_v he_o still_o to_o help_v they_o to_o better_a term_n a_o treaty_n be_v agree_v on_o they_o demand_v their_o pardon_n for_o what_o they_o have_v do_v together_o with_o a_o absolution_n to_o be_v procure_v from_o rome_n for_o the_o kill_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o that_o the_o castle_n and_o the_o governor_n son_n shall_v remain_v in_o their_o hand_n till_o the_o absolution_n be_v bring_v over_o some_o of_o the_o preacher_n apprehend_v the_o clergy_n may_v revenge_v the_o cardinal_n death_n on_o they_o be_v force_v to_o fly_v into_o the_o castle_n but_o one_o of_o they_o john_n rough_a who_o be_v afterward_o burn_v in_o england_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n be_v so_o offend_v at_o the_o licentiousness_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o be_v in_o the_o castle_n who_o be_v a_o reproach_n to_o that_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o favour_n leave_v they_o and_o go_v away_o in_o one_o of_o the_o ship_n that_o bring_v provision_n out_o of_o england_n when_o the_o absolution_n come_v from_o rome_n they_o except_v to_o it_o for_o some_o word_n in_o it_o that_o call_v the_o kill_n of_o the_o cardinal_n crimen_fw-la irremissibile_fw-la a_o unpardonable_a crime_n by_o which_o they_o say_v the_o absolution_n give_v they_o no_o security_n since_o it_o be_v null_n if_o the_o fact_n can_v not_o be_v pardon_v the_o truth_n be_v they_o be_v encourage_v from_o england_n so_o they_o refuse_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o capitulation_n and_o reject_v the_o absolution_n but_o some_o ship_n and_o soldier_n be_v send_v from_o france_n the_o castle_n be_v besiege_v at_o land_n and_o shut_v up_o also_o by_o sea_n and_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o a_o plague_n break_v out_o within_o it_o of_o which_o many_o die_v upon_o this_o no_o help_n come_v sudden_o from_o england_n they_o be_v force_v to_o deliver_v up_o the_o place_n on_o no_o better_a term_n than_o that_o their_o life_n shall_v be_v spare_v but_o they_o be_v to_o be_v banish_v scotland_n and_o never_o to_o return_v to_o it_o the_o castle_n be_v demolish_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o appoint_v all_o place_n where_o any_o cardinal_n be_v kill_v to_o be_v raze_v this_o be_v not_o complete_v this_o year_n and_o not_o till_o two_o year_n after_o only_o i_o think_v it_o best_a to_o join_v the_o whole_a matter_n together_o and_o set_v it_o down_o all_o at_o once_o in_o november_n follow_v a_o new_a parliament_n be_v hold_v where_o towards_o the_o expense_n of_o the_o king_n war_n the_o convocation_n of_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n grant_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o former_a subsidy_n of_o six_o shilling_n in_o the_o pound_n sit_v to_o be_v pay_v in_o two_o year_n but_o for_o the_o temporality_n a_o subsidy_n be_v demand_v from_o they_o of_o another_o kind_n there_o be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n several_a college_n chapel_n chantry_n hospital_n and_o fraternity_n king_n consist_v of_o secular_a priest_n who_o enjoy_v pension_n for_o say_v mass_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o have_v endow_v they_o now_o the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n be_v leave_v indifferent_a by_o the_o doctrine_n set_v out_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o trade_n of_o redeem_v soul_n be_v condemn_v it_o be_v think_v needless_a to_o keep_v up_o so_o many_o endowment_n to_o no_o purpose_n those_o priest_n be_v also_o general_o ill-affected_a to_o the_o king_n proceed_n since_o their_o trade_n be_v so_o much_o lessen_v by_o they_o therefore_o many_o of_o they_o have_v be_v deal_v
father_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o tower_n that_o which_o be_v most_o insist_v on_o be_v their_o give_v the_o arm_n of_o edward_n the_o confessor_n which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n this_o the_o earl_n of_o surrey_n justify_v and_o say_v they_o give_v their_o arm_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o king_n herald_n but_o all_o excuse_n avail_v nothing_o for_o his_o father_n and_o he_o be_v design_v to_o be_v destroy_v upon_o reason_n of_o state_n for_o which_o some_o colour_n be_v to_o be_v find_v out_o 1547._o the_o earl_n of_o surrey_n be_v but_o a_o commoner_n be_v bring_v to_o his_o trial_n at_o guildhall_n and_o put_v upon_o a_o inquest_n of_o commoner_n consist_v of_o nine_o knight_n and_o three_o esquire_n execute_v by_o who_o he_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o treason_n and_o have_v sentence_n of_o death_n pass_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v execute_v on_o the_o 19_o of_o january_n at_o tower-hill_n it_o be_v general_o condemn_v as_o a_o act_n of_o high_a injustice_n and_o severity_n which_o load_v the_o seimour_n with_o a_o popular_a odium_n that_o they_o can_v never_o overcome_v he_o be_v much_o pity_v be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a part_n and_o high_a courage_n with_o many_o other_o noble_a quality_n but_o the_o king_n who_o never_o hate_v nor_o ruin_v any_o body_n by_o half_n resolve_v to_o complete_a the_o misfortune_n of_o that_o family_n king_n by_o the_o attaindor_n of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o all_o his_o eminent_a service_n be_v now_o forget_v so_o the_o submission_n he_o make_v can_v not_o allay_v a_o displeasure_n that_o be_v only_o to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o his_o life_n and_o fortune_n he_o write_v to_o the_o king_n protest_v his_o innocency_n that_o he_o have_v never_o a_o thought_n to_o his_o prejudice_n and_o can_v not_o imagine_v what_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n he_o have_v spend_v his_o whole_a life_n in_o his_o service_n and_o do_v not_o know_v that_o ever_o he_o have_v offend_v any_o person_n or_o that_o any_o be_v displease_v with_o he_o except_o for_o prosecute_a the_o breaker_n of_o the_o act_n about_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o in_o that_o and_o in_o every_o thing_n else_o as_o he_o have_v be_v always_o obedient_a to_o the_o king_n law_n so_o he_o be_v resolve_v still_o to_o obey_v any_o law_n he_o shall_v make_v he_o desire_v he_o may_v be_v examine_v with_o his_o accuser_n face_n to_o face_n before_o the_o king_n 1547._o or_o at_o least_o before_o his_o council_n and_o if_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v wrongful_o accuse_v let_v he_o be_v punish_v as_o he_o deserve_v in_o conclusion_n he_o beg_v the_o king_n will_v have_v pity_n on_o he_o and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o favour_n take_v all_o his_o land_n or_o good_n from_o he_o or_o as_o much_o of_o they_o as_o he_o please_v yet_o all_o this_o have_v no_o effect_n on_o the_o king_n so_o he_o be_v desire_v to_o make_v a_o more_o formal_a submission_n which_o he_o do_v on_o the_o 12_o of_o january_n under_o his_o hand_n ten_o privy_a councillor_n be_v witness_n in_o it_o he_o confess_v first_o his_o discover_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o king_n council_n second_o his_o conceal_v his_o son_n treason_n in_o use_v to_o give_v the_o arm_n of_o st._n edward_n the_o confessor_n which_o do_v only_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o which_o his_o son_n have_v no_o right_n three_o that_o he_o have_v ever_o since_o his_o father_n death_n bear_v in_o the_o first_o quarter_n of_o his_o arm_n the_o arm_n of_o england_n with_o a_o difference_n of_o the_o label_n of_o silver_n that_o be_v the_o proper_a arm_n of_o the_o prince_n which_o be_v do_v in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n and_o give_v occasion_n for_o disturb_v or_o interrupt_v the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o realm_n this_o he_o acknowledge_v be_v high_a treason_n he_o confess_v he_o deserve_v to_o be_v attaint_v of_o high_a treason_n and_o humble_o beg_v the_o king_n mercy_n and_o compassion_n he_o yield_v to_o all_o this_o hope_v by_o such_o a_o submission_n and_o compliance_n to_o have_v overcome_v the_o king_n displeasure_n but_o his_o expectation_n fail_v he_o a_o parliament_n be_v call_v the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o coronation_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o wales_n meet_v but_o it_o be_v think_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o call_v it_o be_v to_o attaint_v the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n for_o which_o they_o have_v not_o colour_n enough_o to_o do_v it_o in_o a_o trial_n by_o his_o peer_n therefore_o a_o attaindor_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v think_v the_o better_a way_n so_o it_o be_v move_v that_o the_o king_n intend_v to_o crown_v his_o son_n prince_n of_o wales_n desire_v they_o will_v go_v on_o with_o all_o possible_a haste_n in_o the_o attaindor_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n that_o so_o these_o place_n which_o he_o hold_v by_o patent_n may_v be_v dispose_v of_o by_o the_o king_n to_o such_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a who_o shall_v assist_v at_o the_o coronation_n and_o upon_o this_o slight_a pretence_n since_o a_o better_a can_v not_o be_v find_v the_o bill_n of_o attaindor_n be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n on_o the_o 18_o of_o january_n and_o on_o the_o 19_o and_o 20_o it_o be_v read_v the_o second_o and_o three_o time_n attaint_v and_o so_o pass_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o be_v send_v down_o to_o the_o commons_o who_o on_o the_o 24_o send_v it_o up_o also_o pass_v on_o the_o 27_o the_o lord_n be_v order_v to_o be_v in_o their_o robe_n that_o the_o royal_a assent_n may_v be_v give_v to_o it_o which_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n with_o some_o other_o join_v in_o commission_n do_v give_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n and_o it_o have_v be_v execute_v the_o next_o morning_n if_o the_o king_n death_n have_v not_o prevent_v it_o upon_o what_o ground_n this_o attaindor_n be_v found_v i_o can_v only_o give_v this_o account_n from_o the_o 34th_o act_n of_o the_o first_o parliament_n of_o queen_n mary_n in_o which_o this_o act_n be_v declare_v null_n and_o void_a by_o the_o common_a law_n of_o the_o land_n for_o i_o can_v find_v the_o act_n itself_o upon_o record_n in_o the_o act_n of_o repeal_n it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o special_a matter_n in_o the_o act_n of_o attaindor_n but_o only_o general_a word_n of_o treason_n and_o conspiracy_n and_o that_o out_o of_o their_o care_n of_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o prince_n they_o pass_v it_o but_o the_o act_n of_o repeal_n say_v also_o that_o the_o only_a thing_n with_o which_o he_o be_v charge_v be_v for_o bear_v of_o arm_n which_o he_o and_o his_o ancestor_n have_v bear_v both_o within_o and_o without_o the_o kingdom_n both_o in_o the_o king_n presence_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o progenitor_n which_o they_o may_v lawful_o bear_v and_o give_v as_o by_o good_a and_o substantial_a matter_n of_o record_n it_o do_v appear_v it_o be_v also_o add_v that_o the_o king_n die_v after_o the_o date_n of_o the_o commission_n that_o the_o king_n only_o empower_v they_o to_o give_v his_o assent_n but_o do_v not_o give_v it_o himself_o and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v by_o any_o record_n that_o they_o give_v it_o that_o the_o king_n do_v not_o sign_n the_o commission_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n his_o stamp_n be_v only_o set_v to_o it_o and_o that_o not_o to_o the_o upper_a but_o the_o nether_a part_n of_o it_o contrary_a to_o the_o king_n custom_n all_o these_o particular_n though_o clear_v afterward_o i_o mention_v now_o because_o they_o give_v light_n to_o this_o matter_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o act_n be_v pass_v a_o warrant_n be_v send_v to_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o tower_n king_n to_o cut_v off_o his_o head_n the_o next_o morning_n but_o the_o king_n die_v in_o the_o night_n the_o lieutenant_n can_v do_v nothing_o on_o that_o warrant_n and_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o think_v advisable_v to_o begin_v the_o new_a king_n reign_n with_o such_o a_o odious_a execution_n and_o thus_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n escape_v very_o narrow_o both_o party_n descant_v on_o this_o different_o the_o conscientious_a papist_n say_v it_o be_v god_n just_a judgement_n on_o he_o who_o have_v in_o all_o thing_n follow_v the_o king_n pleasure_n oftentimes_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n that_o he_o shall_v smart_v under_o that_o power_n which_o himself_o have_v help_v so_o considerable_o to_o make_v it_o be_v raise_v so_o high_a the_o protestant_n can_v not_o but_o observe_v a_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o measure_v out_o such_o a_o hard_a measure_n to_o he_o that_o be_v so_o heavy_a on_o all_o those_o poor_a people_n that_o be_v
hospital_n and_o he_o order_v the_o church_n of_o the_o franciscan_n a_o little_a within_o newgate_n to_o be_v open_v which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o hospital_n this_o be_v do_v the_o 3d_o of_o january_n another_o be_v of_o trinity_n college_n in_o cambridg_n one_o of_o the_o noble_a foundation_n in_o christendom_n he_o continue_v in_o a_o decay_n till_o the_o 27_o of_o the_o month_n and_o then_o many_o sign_n of_o his_o approach_a end_n appear_v few_o will_v adventure_v on_o so_o unwelcome_a a_o thing_n as_o to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o change_n then_o imminent_a but_o sir_n anthony_n denny_n have_v the_o honesty_n and_o courage_n to_o do_v it_o and_o desire_v he_o to_o prepare_v for_o death_n and_o remember_v his_o former_a life_n and_o to_o call_v on_o god_n for_o mercy_n through_o jesus_n christ._n upon_o which_o the_o king_n express_v his_o grief_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o past_a life_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o trust_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v great_a than_o they_o be_v then_o denny_n ask_v he_o if_o any_o churchman_n shall_v be_v send_v for_o and_o he_o say_v if_o any_o it_o shall_v be_v archbishop_n cranmer_n and_o after_o he_o have_v rest_v a_o little_a find_v his_o spirit_n decay_v apace_o he_o order_v he_o to_o be_v send_v for_o to_o croyden_n where_o he_o be_v then_o but_o before_o he_o can_v come_v the_o king_n be_v speechless_a so_o cranmer_n desire_v he_o to_o give_v some_o sign_n of_o his_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n upon_o which_o he_o squeeze_v his_o hand_n and_o soon_o after_o die_v after_o he_o have_v reign_v 37_o year_n and_o 9_o month_n in_o the_o six_o and_o fifty_o year_n of_o his_o age_n his_o death_n be_v keep_v up_o three_o day_n for_o the_o journal_o of_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n show_v that_o they_o continue_v read_v bill_n and_o go_v on_o in_o business_n till_o the_o 31st_o and_o no_o soon_o do_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n signify_v to_o they_o that_o the_o king_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v thereby_o dissolve_v it_o be_v certain_a the_o parliament_n have_v no_o be_v after_o the_o king_n breath_n be_v out_o so_o their_o sit_v till_o the_o 31st_o show_v that_o the_o king_n death_n be_v not_o general_o know_v all_o those_o three_o day_n the_o reason_n of_o conceal_v it_o so_o long_o may_v either_o be_v that_o they_o be_v consider_v what_o to_o do_v with_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n or_o that_o the_o seymour_n be_v lay_v their_o matter_n 1547._o so_o as_o to_o be_v secure_a in_o the_o government_n before_o they_o publish_v the_o king_n death_n i_o shall_v not_o adventure_v on_o add_v any_o further_a character_n of_o he_o to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v with_o so_o much_o wit_n and_o judgement_n by_o the_o lord_n h●rbert_n but_o shall_v refer_v the_o reader_n whole_o to_o he_o only_o add_v a_o account_n of_o the_o black_a part_n of_o it_o the_o attaindor_n that_o pass_v the_o last_o 13_o year_n of_o his_o life_n which_o be_v comprehend_v within_o this_o book_n of_o which_o i_o have_v cast_v over_o the_o relation_n to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o it_o in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o his_o reign_n party_n there_o be_v many_o thing_n that_o seem_v great_a severity_n especial_o as_o they_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o roman_a party_n who_o relation_n be_v not_o a_o little_a strengthen_v by_o the_o faint_a excuse_n and_o the_o mistake_a account_n that_o most_o of_o the_o protestant_a historian_n have_v make_v the_o king_n be_v natural_o impetuous_a and_o can_v not_o bear_v provocation_n the_o time_n be_v very_o ticklish_a his_o subject_n be_v general_o addict_v to_o the_o old_a superstition_n especial_o in_o the_o northern_a part_n the_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v both_o numerous_a and_o wealthy_a the_o pope_n be_v his_o implacable_a enemy_n the_o emperor_n be_v a_o formidable_a prince_n and_o be_v then_o master_n of_o all_o the_o netherlands_o have_v many_o advantage_n for_o the_o war_n he_o design_v against_o en●land_n cardinal_z pole_z his_o kinsman_n be_v go_v over_o all_o the_o court_n of_o christendom_n to_o persuade_v a_o league_n against_o england_n as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o great_a necessity_n and_o merit_n than_o a_o war_n against_o the_o turk_n this_o be_v without_o the_o least_o aggravation_n the_o state_n of_o affair_n at_o that_o time_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v he_o be_v sore_o put_v to_o it_o a_o superstition_n that_o be_v so_o blind_a and_o headstrong_a and_o enemy_n that_o be_v both_o so_o powerful_a so_o spiteful_a and_o so_o industrious_a make_v rigour_n necessary_a nor_o be_v any_o general_n of_o a_o army_n more_o concern_v to_o deal_v severe_o with_o spy_n and_o intelligencer_n than_o he_o be_v to_o proceed_v against_o all_o the_o pope_n adherent_n or_o such_o as_o keep_v correspondence_n with_o pole_n he_o have_v observe_v in_o history_n that_o upon_o much_o less_o provocation_n than_o himself_o have_v give_v not_o only_o several_a emperor_n and_o foreign_a prince_n have_v be_v dispossess_v of_o their_o dominion_n but_o two_o of_o his_o own_o ancestor_n henry_n the_o 2d_o and_o king_n john_n have_v be_v drive_v to_o great_a extremity_n and_o force_v to_o unusual_a and_o most_o indecent_a submission_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o clergy_n the_o pope_n power_n over_o the_o clergy_n be_v so_o absolute_a and_o their_o dependence_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o be_v so_o implicit_a and_o the_o popish_a clergy_n have_v so_o great_a a_o interest_n in_o the_o superstitious_a multitude_n who_o conscience_n they_o govern_v that_o nothing_o but_o a_o strong_a passion_n can_v either_o tame_a the_o clergy_n or_o quiet_a the_o people_n if_o there_o have_v be_v the_o least_o hope_n of_o impunity_n the_o last_o part_n of_o his_o reign_n will_v have_v be_v one_o continue_v rebellion_n therefore_o to_o prevent_v a_o more_o profuse_a effusion_n of_o blood_n it_o seem_v necessary_a to_o execute_v law_n severe_o in_o some_o particular_a instance_n there_o be_v one_o calumny_n that_o run_v in_o a_o thread_n through_o all_o the_o historian_n of_o the_o popish_a side_n which_o not_o a_o few_o of_o our_o own_o have_v ignorant_o take_v up_o that_o many_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o not_o swear_v the_o king_n supremacy_n it_o be_v a_o impudent_a falsehood_n for_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o person_n suffer_v on_o that_o account_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o law_n for_o any_o such_o oath_n before_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o 28_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n when_o the_o unsufferable_a bull_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o 3d_o engage_v he_o to_o look_v a_o little_a more_o to_o his_o own_o safety_n then_o indeed_o in_o the_o oath_n for_o maintain_v the_o successiono_n f_o the_o crown_n the_o subject_n be_v require_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o treason_n to_o swear_v that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o that_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o former_a oath_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o 25_o and_o enact_v in_o the_o 26_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n it_o can_v but_o be_v confess_v that_o to_o enact_v under_o pain_n of_o death_n that_o none_o shall_v deny_v the_o king_n title_n and_o to_o proceed_v upon_o that_o against_o offender_n be_v a_o very_a different_a thing_n from_o force_v they_o to_o swear_v the_o king_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n supremacy_n the_o first_o instance_n of_o these_o capital_a proceed_n be_v in_o easter-term_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 27_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n three_o prior_n and_o a_o monk_n of_o the_o carthusian_n order_n be_v then_o indict_v of_o treason_n for_o say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o supreme_a head_n under_o christ_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n these_o be_v john_n houghton_n prior_n of_o the_o charterhouse_n near_o london_n augustin_n webster_n prior_n of_o axholme_n robert_n laurence_n prior_n of_o bruill_n and_o richard_n reynolds_n a_o monk_n of_o zion_n this_o last_o be_v esteem_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o that_o time_n and_o that_o order_n they_o be_v try_v in_o westminster-hall_n by_o a_o commission_n of_o oyer_n and_o terminer_n they_o plead_v not_o guilty_a but_o the_o jury_n find_v they_o guilty_a and_o judgement_n be_v give_v that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v as_o traitor_n the_o record_n mention_n no_o other_o particular_n but_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o popish_a side_n make_v a_o splendid_a recital_n of_o the_o courage_n and_o constancy_n they_o express_v both_o in_o their_o trial_n and_o at_o their_o death_n it_o be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n for_o man_n so_o use_v to_o the_o legend_n and_o the_o make_n of_o fine_a story_n for_o the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o their_o order_n to_o dress_v up_o such_o narrative_n with_o much_o pomp_n but_o as_o their_o plead_n not_o
that_o commotion_n be_v severe_o handle_v it_o be_v by_o their_o mean_n that_o the_o discontent_n be_v chief_o foment_v they_o have_v take_v all_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v enjoin_v they_o and_o yet_o continue_v to_o be_v still_o practise_v against_o the_o state_n which_o as_o it_o be_v high_o contrary_a to_o the_o peaceable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n so_o it_o be_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o they_o profess_v that_o oblige_v they_o to_o forsake_v the_o world_n and_o to_o follow_v a_o religious_a and_o spiritual_a course_n of_o life_n 1538._o the_o next_o example_n of_o justice_n be_v a_o year_n after_o this_o heresy_n of_o one_o forest_n a_o observant_a friar_n he_o have_v be_v as_o sanders_n say_v confessor_n to_o queen_n katherine_n but_o it_o seem_v depart_v from_o her_o interest_n for_o he_o insinuate_v himself_o so_o into_o the_o king_n that_o he_o recover_v his_o good_a opinion_n be_v a_o ignorant_a and_o lewd_a man_n he_o be_v account_v by_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o that_o house_n to_o which_o he_o belong_v in_o greenwich_n a_o reproach_n to_o their_o order_n concern_v this_o i_o have_v see_v a_o large_a account_n in_o a_o original_a letter_n write_v by_o a_o brother_n of_o the_o same_o house_n have_v regain_v the_o king_n good_a opinion_n he_o put_v all_o those_o who_o have_v favour_v the_o divorce_n under_o great_a fear_n for_o he_o proceed_v cruel_o against_o they_o and_o one_o rainscroft_n be_v suspect_v to_o have_v give_v secret_a intelligence_n of_o what_o be_v do_v among_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o so_o hardly_o use_v that_o he_o die_v in_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v as_o that_o letter_n relate_v do_v by_o friar_n forest_n mean_n this_o friar_n be_v find_v to_o have_v deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n for_o though_o he_o himself_o have_v swear_v it_o yet_o he_o have_v infuse_v it_o into_o many_o in_o confession_n that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v question_v for_o these_o practice_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o oath_n that_o he_o have_v take_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o take_v that_o oath_n with_o his_o outward_a man_n hall_n but_o his_o inward_a man_n have_v never_o consent_v to_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o his_o trial_n and_o accuse_v of_o several_a heretical_a opinion_n that_o he_o hold_v he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n 1538._o upon_o this_o he_o have_v more_o freedom_n allow_v he_o in_o the_o prison_n but_o some_o come_n to_o he_o divert_v he_o from_o the_o submission_n he_o have_v offer_v so_o that_o when_o the_o paper_n of_o abjuration_n be_v bring_v he_o he_o refuse_v to_o set_v his_o hand_n to_o it_o upon_o which_o he_o be_v judge_v a_o obstinate_a heretic_n the_o record_n of_o these_o proceed_n be_v lose_v but_o the_o book_n of_o that_o time_n say_v that_o he_o deny_v the_o gospel_n it_o be_v like_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o pretence_n that_o without_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n it_o have_v no_o authority_n upon_o which_o several_a writer_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v say_v undecent_a and_o scandalous_a thing_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v bring_v to_o smithfield_n where_o be_v present_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n to_o offer_v he_o his_o pardon_n if_o he_o will_v abjure_v latimer_n make_v a_o sermon_n against_o his_o error_n and_o study_v to_o persuade_v he_o to_o recant_v but_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o former_a opinion_n so_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o a_o most_o severe_a manner_n he_o be_v hang_v in_o a_o chain_n about_o his_o middle_n and_o the_o great_a image_n that_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o wal●s_n be_v break_v to_o piece_n and_o serve_v for_o fuel_n to_o burn_v he_o he_o show_v great_a unquietness_n of_o mind_n and_o end_v his_o life_n in_o a_o ungodly_a manner_n as_o hall_n say_v who_o add_v this_o character_n of_o he_o that_o he_o have_v little_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sincere_a truth_n and_o less_o trust_n in_o he_o at_o his_o end_n in_o winter_n that_o year_n a_o correspondence_n be_v discover_v with_o cardinal_n pole_n friend_n who_o be_v barefaced_a in_o his_o treasonable_a design_n against_o the_o king_n his_o brother_n sir_n geoffrey_n pole_n discover_v the_o whole_a plot._n for_o which_o the_o marquis_n of_o exeter_n that_o be_v the_o king_n cousin-german_n by_o his_o mother_n who_o be_v edward_n the_o 4ths_n daughter_n the_o lord_n montacute_n the_o cardinal_n brother_n sir_n geoffrey_n pole_n and_o sir_n edward_n nevil_n be_v send_v to_o the_o tower_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o november_n they_o be_v accuse_v for_o have_v maintain_v a_o correspondence_n with_o the_o cardinal_n and_o for_o express_v a_o hatred_n of_o the_o king_n with_o a_o dislike_n of_o his_o proceed_n and_o a_o readiness_n to_o rise_v upon_o any_o good_a opportunity_n that_o may_v offer_v itself_o the_o special_a matter_n bring_v against_o the_o lord_n montacute_n and_o the_o marquis_n of_o excet●r_n who_o be_v try_v by_o their_o peer_n on_o the_o 2d_o and_o 3d_o of_o december_n in_o the_o 30_o year_n of_o this_o reign_n be_v that_o whereas_o cardinal_n pole_n and_o other_o have_v cast_v off_o their_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o go_v and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o king_n mortal_a enemy_n the_o lord_n montacute_n do_v on_o the_o 24_o of_o july_n in_o the_o 28_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n a_o few_o month_n before_o the_o rebellion_n break_v out_o say_v that_o he_o like_v well_o the_o proceed_n of_o his_o brother_n the_o cardinal_n but_o do_v not_o like_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o say_v i_o trust_v to_o see_v a_o change_n of_o this_o world_n i_o trust_v to_o have_v a_o fair_a day_n upon_o those_o knave_n that_o rule_v about_o the_o king_n and_o i_o trust_v to_o see_v a_o merry_a world_n one_o day_n word_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v also_o charge_v on_o the_o marquis_n the_o lord_n montacute_n further_o say_v i_o will_v i_o be_v over_o the_o sea_n with_o my_o brother_n for_o this_o world_n will_v one_o day_n come_v to_o stripe_n it_o must_v needs_o so_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o i_o fear_v we_o shall_v lack_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o honest_a man_n he_o also_o say_v he_o have_v dream_v that_o the_o king_n be_v dead_a and_o though_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o dead_a he_o will_v die_v sudden_o one_o day_n his_o leg_n will_v kill_v he_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v jolly_a stir_n say_v also_o that_o he_o have_v never_o love_v he_o from_o his_o childhood_n and_o that_o cardinal_n wolsey_n will_v have_v be_v a_o honest_a man_n if_o he_o have_v have_v a_o honest_a master_n and_o the_o king_n have_v say_v to_o the_o lord_n he_o woul●●eave_v they_o one_o day_n have_v some_o apprehension_n he_o may_v short_o die_v that_o lord_n say_v if_o he_o will_v serve_v we_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v happy_o rid_v a_o time_n will_v come_v i_o fear_v we_o shall_v not_o tarry_v the_o time_n we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o he_o have_v also_o say_v he_o be_v sorry_a the_o lord_n ab●rg●●●●y_o be_v dead_a for_o he_o can_v have_v make_v ten_o thousand_o man_n and_o for_o his_o part_n he_o will_v go_v and_o live_v in_o the_o west_n where_o the_o marquis_n of_o exciter_n be_v strong_a and_o have_v also_o say_v upon_o the_o break_n of_o the_o northern_a rebellion_n that_o the_o lord_n darcy_n play_v the_o fool_n for_o he_o go_v to_o pluck_v away_o the_o council_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v begin_v with_o the_o head_n first_o but_o i_o beshrew_v he_o for_o leave_v off_o so_o soon_o these_o be_v the_o word_n charge_v on_o those_o lord_n as_o clear_a discovery_n of_o their_o treasonable_a design_n and_o that_o they_o know_v of_o the_o rebellion_n that_o break_v out_o and_o only_o intend_v to_o have_v keep_v it_o off_o to_o a_o fit_a opportunity_n they_o be_v also_o accuse_v of_o correspondence_n with_o cardinal_n pol●_n that_o be_v the_o king_n declare_v enemy_n upon_o these_o point_n the_o lord_n plead_v not_o guilty_a but_o be_v find_v guilty_a by_o their_o peer_n and_o so_o judgement_n be_v give_v on_o the_o four_o of_o december_n be_v indict_v sir_n geoffrey_n pol●_n for_o hold_v correspondence_n with_o his_o brother_n the_o cardinal_n and_o say_v that_o he_o approve_v of_o his_o proceed_n but_o not_o of_o the_o king_n sir_n ed●ard_n nevil_n brother_n to_o the_o lord_n abergaveny_n for_o say_v the_o king_n be_v a_o beast_n and_o worse_o than_o a_o beast_n george_n crofts_n chancellor_n of_o the_o cathedral_n of_o chichester_n for_o say_v the_o king_n be_v not_o b●t_v the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o john_n collins_n for_o say_v the_o king_n will_v hang_v in_o h●ll_n one_o day_n for_o the_o pluck_n down_o of_o
censure_v p._n 259_o a_o act_n about_o the_o suppression_n of_o all_o monastery_n p._n 260_o another_o for_o erect_v new_a bishopric_n p._n 262_o the_o king_n design_n about_o these_o ibid._n a_o act_n for_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n proclamation_n p._n 263_o a_o act_n concern_v precedence_n p._n 264_o some_o act_n of_o attaindor_n ibid._n the_o king_n care_n of_o cranmer_n p._n 265_o who_o write_v against_o the_o six_o article_n ibid._n proceed_n upon_o that_o act_n p._n 266_o bonner_n commission_n for_o hold_v his_o bishopric_n of_o the_o king_n p._n 267_o the_o total_a dissolution_n of_o abbey_n ibid._n which_o be_v sell_v or_o give_v away_o p._n 268_o a_o project_n of_o a_o seminary_n for_o minister_n of_o state_n p._n 269_o a_o proclamation_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o bible_n p._n 270_o the_o king_n design_n to_o marry_n anne_n of_o cleve_n ibid._n who_o come_v over_o but_o be_v dislike_v by_o the_o king_n p._n 271_o anno_fw-la 1540_o but_o he_o marry_v she_o yet_o can_v never_o love_v she_o p._n 273_o a_o parliament_n be_v call_v p._n 274_o where_o cromwell_n speak_v as_o lord_n vicegerent_n ibid._n the_o suppression_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o st._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n p._n 275_o cromwell_n fall_n p._n 276_o the_o king_n be_v in_o love_n with_o katherine_n howard_n ibid._n cranmers_n friendship_n to_o cromwell_n p._n 277_o cromwel_n attaindor_n p._n 278_o censure_n pass_v upon_o it_o p._n 279_o the_o king_n divorce_n be_v propose_v p._n 280_o and_o refer_v to_o the_o convocation_n ibid._n reason_n pretend_a for_o it_o ibid._n the_o convocation_n agree_v to_o it_o p._n 281_o which_o be_v much_o censure_v ibid._n it_o be_v confirm_v in_o parliament_n p._n 282_o the_o queen_n consent_v to_o it_o ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o incontinence_n of_o priest_n ibid._n another_o act_n about_o religion_n ibid._n another_o concern_v precontract_n p._n 283_o subsidy_n grant_v by_o clergy_n and_o laity_n ibid._n cromwell_n death_n p._n 284_o his_o character_n ibid._n design_n against_o cranmer_n p._n 285_o some_o bishop_n and_o divine_n consult_v about_o religion_n p._n 286_o a_o explanation_n of_o faith_n ibid._n cranmers_n opinion_n about_o it_o p._n 288_o they_o explain_v the_o apostle_n creed_n ibid._n and_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n with_o great_a care_n p._n 289_o as_o also_o the_o ten_o commandment_n p._n 290_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o ave_fw-la maria_n and_o freewill_n p._n 291_o and_o justification_n and_o good_a work_n p._n 292_o publish_v by_o the_o king_n but_o much_o censure_v p._n 293_o a_o correction_n of_o the_o missall_n p._n 294_o the_o suffering_n of_o barnes_n and_o other_o p._n 295_o they_o be_v condemn_v unheard_a p._n 297_o their_o speech_n at_o their_o death_n ibid._n bonner_n cruelty_n p._n 299_o new_a bishopric_n found_v p._n 300_o cranmer_n design_n be_v defeat_v p._n 301_o these_o foundation_n be_v censure_v ibid._n the_o state_n of_o the_o court_n p._n 302_o the_o bible_n be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n ibid._n a_o order_n for_o churchman_n housekeep_n p._n 303_o the_o king_n go_v to_o york_n p._n 304_o the_o state_n of_o scotland_n ibid._n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o reformation_n p._n 305_o patrick_n hamiltons_n suffering_n ibid._n a_o further_a prosecution_n p._n 308_o the_o king_n be_v whole_o quiet_v by_o the_o clergy_n p._n 309_o some_o put_v to_o death_n other_o escape_v p._n 310_o the_o queen_n ill_a life_n be_v discover_v p._n 312_o anno_fw-la 1542._o a_o parliament_n call_v ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o queen_n much_o censure_v p._n 313_o a_o design_n to_o suppress_v the_o english_a bible_n p._n 314_o the_o bible_n order_v to_o be_v revise_v by_o the_o university_n p._n 315._o b._n bonner_n injunction_n ibid._n the_o way_n of_o preach_v at_o that_o time_n p._n 316_o play_n and_o interlude_n then_o act_v p._n 318_o war_n between_o england_n and_o scotland_n ibid._n the_o scot_n be_v defeat_v and_o their_o king_n die_v p._n 320_o anno_fw-la 1543._o cranmer_z promote_v a_o reformation_n p._n 321_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o it_o ibid._n another_o about_o the_o king_n proclamation_n p._n 322_o a_o league_n between_o the_o king_n and_o the_o emperor_n p._n 323_o a_o match_n design_v with_o scotland_n ibid._n but_o the_o french_a party_n prevail_v there_o p._n 324_o a_o war_n with_o france_n p._n 325_o a_o persecution_n of_o the_o reformer_n ibid._n marbecks_n great_a ingeniousness_n p._n 326_o three_o burn_v at_o windsor_n p._n 327_o their_o persecutor_n be_v perjure_a ibid._n a_o design_n against_o cranmer_n ibid._n it_o come_v to_o nothing_o p._n 328_o his_o christian_a behaviour_n ibid._n anno_fw-la 1544._o a_o new_a parliament_n ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o succession_n ibid._n a_o act_n against_o conspiracy_n p._n 330_o a_o act_n for_o revise_v the_o canon-law_n ibid._n a_o discharge_n of_o the_o king_n debt_n ibid._n the_o war_n against_o scotland_n p._n 331_o audley_n the_o chancellor_n die_v ibid._n the_o prayer_n be_v put_v in_o english_a ibid._n bulloign_n be_v take_v p._n 332_o anno._n 1545._o the_o german_n mediate_v a_o peace_n between_o england_n and_o france_n ibid._n some_o great_a church-preferment_n p._n 333_o wisharts_n suffering_n in_o scotland_n ibid._n cardinal_n beaton_n be_v kill_v p._n 336_o anno_fw-la 1546._o a_o new_a parliament_n p._n 338._o chapel_n and_o chantery_n give_v to_o the_o king_n ibid._n the_o king_n speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n ibid._n the_o king_n confirm_v the_o right_n of_o university_n p._n 334_o a_o peace_n with_o france_n p._n 340_o design_n of_o a_o further_a reformation_n ibid._n shaxtons_n apostasy_n ibid._n the_o trouble_n of_o anne_n askew_n p._n 341_o she_o endure_v the_o rack_n p._n 342_o and_o be_v burn_v with_o some_o other_o ibid._n a_o design_n against_o cranmer_n ibid._n the_o king_n take_v care_n of_o he_o p._n 343_o a_o design_n against_o the_o queen_n p._n 344_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n disgrace_n p._n 345_o anno_fw-la 1547._o the_o earl_n of_o surrey_n be_v execute_v p._n 346_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n submission_n ibid._n a_o parliament_n meet_v p._n 347_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n be_v attaint_v ibid._n his_o death_n prevent_v by_o the_o king_n p._n 348_o the_o emperor_n design_n against_o the_o protestant_n ibid._n the_o king_n sickness_n ibid._n his_o latter_a will_v a_o forgery_n p._n 349_o the_o king_n severity_n against_o the_o popish_a party_n p._n 351_o some_o carthusian_n execute_v for_o deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n p._n 352_o and_o a_o priest_n for_o treason_n ibid._n three_o monk_n execute_v ibid._n fisher_n trial_n and_o death_n p._n 353_o his_o character_n p._n 354_o moor_n trial_n and_o death_n ibid._n his_o character_n p._n 355_o attaind●rs_n after_o the_o rebellion_n be_v quiet_v p._n 356_o censure_n pass_v upon_o it_o p._n 357_o f._n forest_n equivocation_n and_o heresy_n ibid._n the_o proceed_n against_o cardinal_n pole_n friend_n p._n 358_o attaindor_n without_o hear_v the_o party_n p._n 359_o the_o conclusion_n p._n 362_o addenda_fw-la p._n 363_o a_o collection_n of_o record_n and_o original_a paper_n with_o other_o instrument_n refer_v to_o in_o the_o former_a history_n i._o the_o record_n of_o card._n adrian_n oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o henry_n the_o seven_o for_o the_o bishopric_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n henricus_fw-la rex_fw-la etc._n etc._n reverend_a roll_n in_o christo_fw-la patri_fw-la domino_fw-la sylvestro_n episcop_n wigorn._n venerabili_fw-la viro_fw-la domino_fw-la roberto_n sherbourn_n ecclesiae_fw-la sancti_fw-la pauli_n london_n decano_fw-la nostris_fw-la in_o romana_fw-la curia_fw-la oratoribus_fw-la ac_fw-la magistro_fw-la hugoni_n yowng_v sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n professori_fw-la salutem_fw-la cum_fw-la omnes_fw-la &_o singuli_fw-la archiepiscopi_fw-la &_o episcopi_fw-la huius_fw-la nostri_fw-la inclyti_fw-la regni_fw-la quorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la nominationes_fw-la &_o promotiones_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsas_fw-la supremas_fw-la dignitates_fw-la nobis_fw-la attinent_fw-la ex_fw-la regali_fw-la &_o peculiari_fw-la quadam_fw-la praerogativa_fw-la jureque_fw-la municipali_fw-la ac_fw-la inveterata_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la hactenus_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la nostro_fw-la regno_fw-la inconcusse_fw-la &_o inviolabiliter_fw-la observata_fw-la teneantur_fw-la &_o astringantur_fw-la statim_fw-la &_o immediate_a post_fw-la impetratas_fw-la bullas_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la super_fw-la eorundem_fw-la promotione_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la nostram_fw-la nominationem_fw-la coram_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o in_fw-la praesentia_fw-la nostra_fw-la si_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la nostro_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la vel_fw-la coram_fw-la commissarijs_fw-la nostris_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la &_o legittime_fw-la deputatis_fw-la si_fw-la alibi_fw-la moram_fw-la traxerunt_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la palam_fw-la publicae_fw-la &_o express_v totaliter_fw-la cedere_fw-la &_o in_o manus_fw-la nostras_fw-la renunciare_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o quibus●unque_fw-la verbis_fw-la clausulis_fw-la &_o sententiis_fw-la in_o ipsis_fw-la bullis_n apostolicis_fw-la contentis_fw-la &_o descriptis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la vel_fw-la quovis_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o futurumesse_n poterunt_fw-la praejudicialia_fw-la sive_fw-la damnosa_fw-la nobis_fw-la haeredibusque_fw-la de_fw-la
papa_n placari_fw-la ac_fw-la regis_fw-la zelum_fw-la ad_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la totiusque_fw-la regni_fw-la devotionem_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la parte_fw-la habere_fw-la posset_n materiam_fw-la commendandi_fw-la et_fw-la addidit_fw-la ultra_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la requisitionem_fw-la &_o exhortationem_fw-la praefatus_fw-la reverendissimus_fw-la pater_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la cantuariensis_n &_o ex_fw-la cord_n ut_fw-la apparuit_fw-la exposuit_fw-la lacrymando_fw-la pericula_fw-la per_fw-la censurarum_fw-la viz._n ecclesiasticarum_fw-la &_o etiam_fw-la interdicti_fw-la fulminationem_fw-la &_o alius_fw-la tam_fw-la regi_fw-la quam_fw-la regno_fw-la quod_fw-la absit_fw-la verisimiliter_fw-la eventura_fw-la alia_fw-la in_fw-la casu_fw-la quo_fw-la responsio_fw-la parliamenti_fw-la illius_fw-la in_fw-la materia_fw-la tunc_fw-la declarata_fw-la grata_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la domino_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o accepta_fw-la sic_fw-la dicendo_fw-la forte_n videtur_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la vestrum_fw-la quod_fw-la haec_fw-la quae_fw-la regni_fw-la praelatos_fw-la potissime_fw-la concernunt_fw-la ex_fw-la cord_n non_fw-la profero_fw-la sciatis_fw-la pro_fw-la certo_fw-la &_o in_o fide_fw-la qua_fw-la deo_fw-la teneor_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la affirmo_fw-la coram_fw-la vobis_fw-la quod_fw-la magis_fw-la mihi_fw-la foret_fw-la acceptum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la confer_v aut_fw-la etiam_fw-la habere_fw-la aliquod_fw-la beneficium_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la quam_fw-la aliqua_fw-la talia_fw-la pericula_fw-la seu_fw-la processus_fw-la meo_fw-la tempore_fw-la in_o ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n scandalum_fw-la venirent_fw-la ulterius_fw-la idem_fw-la reverendissimus_fw-la pater_fw-la express_v declaravit_fw-la qualiter_fw-la dictus_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n in_fw-la diversis_fw-la bullis_n suis_fw-la obtulit_fw-la &_o promisit_fw-la se_fw-la &_o sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la ad_fw-la quascunque_fw-la causas_fw-la &_o occasiones_fw-la editionis_fw-la statuti_fw-la praedicti_fw-la rationabile_fw-la remedium_fw-la apponere_fw-la &_o materias_fw-la causarum_fw-la &_o occasionum_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la statuti_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la tollere_fw-la &_o abolere_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la requisitione_fw-la exhortatione_n &_o periculorum_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la expositione_n finitis_fw-la reverendissimi_fw-la patres_fw-la cantuar._n &_o eborac_n archiepiscopi_fw-la cum_fw-la confratribus_fw-la suis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o praelatis_fw-la praedictis_fw-la recesserunt_fw-la regni_fw-la communitate_fw-la seu_fw-la saltem_fw-la dictis_fw-la viris_fw-la communitatem_fw-la regni_fw-la repraesentantibus_fw-la remanentibus_fw-la &_o circa_fw-la materiam_fw-la eye_n expositam_fw-la tractantibus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la &_o declarationem_fw-la requisitionem_fw-la &_o exhortationem_fw-la hujusmodique_fw-la periculorum_fw-la expositionem_fw-la per_fw-la dictum_fw-la dominum_fw-la archiepiscopum_fw-la cantuariensem_fw-la ut_fw-la praemittitur_fw-la factas_fw-la audientibus_fw-la venerabilibus_fw-la viris_fw-la richardo_n coudray_n archidiacono_n norwici_n in_o ecclesia_fw-la norwicensi_fw-la magistro_fw-la joanne_n forster_n canonico_n lincolnensi_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o johanne_n boold_v notario_fw-la publico_fw-la &_o multis_fw-la aliis_fw-la act._n 33._o anno_fw-la regni_fw-la vicesimo_fw-la tertio_fw-la xli_o a_o act_n concern_v restraint_n of_o payment_n of_o annates_fw-la to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v well_o perceive_v by_o long_a approve_a experience_n that_o great_a and_o inestimable_a sum_n of_o money_n have_v be_v daily_o convey_v out_o of_o this_o realm_n to_o the_o impoverishment_n of_o the_o same_o and_o special_o such_o sum_n of_o money_n as_o the_o pope_n holiness_n his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n by_o long_a time_n have_v heretofore_o take_v of_o all_o and_o singular_a those_o spiritual_a person_n which_o have_v be_v name_v elect_v present_v or_o postulate_v to_o be_v arch-bishop_n or_o bishop_n within_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n under_o the_o title_n of_o annates_fw-la otherwise_o call_v first-fruit_n which_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v take_v of_o every_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n within_o this_o realm_n by_o restraint_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n for_o confirmation_n election_n admission_n postulation_n provision_n collation_n disposition_n institution_n installation_n investiture_n order_n holy_a benediction_n palles_fw-la or_o other_o thing_n requisite_a and_o necessary_a to_o the_o attain_n of_o those_o their_o promotion_n and_o have_v be_v compel_v to_o pay_v before_o they_o can_v attain_v the_o same_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n before_o they_o may_v receive_v any_o part_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o say_a archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n whereunto_o they_o be_v name_v elect_v present_v or_o postulate_v by_o occasion_n whereof_o not_o only_o the_o treasure_n of_o this_o realm_n have_v be_v great_o convey_v out_o of_o the_o same_o but_o also_o it_o have_v happen_v many_o time_n by_o occasion_n of_o death_n unto_o such_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n so_o new_o promote_v within_o two_o or_o three_o year_n after_o he_o or_o their_o consecration_n that_o his_o or_o their_o friend_n by_o who_o he_o or_o they_o have_v be_v holpen_v to_o advance_v and_o make_v payment_n of_o the_o say_v annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v thereby_o utter_o undo_v and_o impoverish_v and_o for_o because_o the_o say_v annates_fw-la have_v rise_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o a_o uncharitable_a custom_n ground_v upon_o no_o just_a or_o good_a title_n and_o the_o payment_n thereof_o obtain_v by_o restraint_n of_o bull_n until_o the_o same_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v pay_v or_o surety_n make_v for_o the_o same_o which_o declare_v the_o say_a payment_n to_o be_v exact_v and_o take_v by_o constraint_n against_o all_o equity_n and_o justice_n the_o noble_a man_n therefore_o of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o wise_a sage_n politic_a commons_o of_o the_o same_o assemble_v in_o this_o present_a parliament_n consider_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n cease_v not_o to_o tax_v take_v and_o exact_v the_o say_v great_a sum_n of_o money_n under_o the_o title_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a to_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o say_a prelate_n and_o this_o realm_n which_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n be_v first_o suffer_v to_o be_v take_v within_o the_o same_o realm_n for_o the_o only_a defence_n of_o christian_a people_n against_o the_o infidel_n and_o now_o they_o be_v claim_v and_o demand_v as_o mere_a duty_n only_o for_o lucre_n against_o all_o right_a and_o conscience_n insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o know_v that_o there_o have_v pass_v out_o of_o this_o realm_n unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n sithen_a the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o most_o noble_a prince_n of_o famous_a memory_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o unto_o this_o present_a time_n under_o the_o name_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n pay_v for_o the_o expedition_n of_o bull_n of_o archbishopric_n and_o bishopric_n the_o sum_n of_o eight_o hundred_o thousand_o ducat_n amount_v in_o sterling_a money_n at_o the_o least_o to_o eightscore_o thousand_o pound_n beside_o other_o great_a and_o intolerable_a sum_n which_o have_v yearly_o be_v convey_v to_o the_o say_a court_n of_o rome_n by_o many_o other_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o the_o great_a impoverishment_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o albeit_o that_o our_o say_a sovereign_n the_o king_n and_o all_o his_o natural_a subject_n as_o well_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a be_v as_o obedient_a devout_a catholic_n and_o humble_a child_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a church_n as_o any_o people_n be_v within_o any_o realm_n christen_v yet_o the_o say_a exaction_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n be_v so_o intolerable_a and_o importable_a to_o this_o realm_n that_o it_o be_v consider_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o realm_n now_o represent_v by_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o same_o assemble_v in_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o the_o king_n highness_n before_o almighty_a god_n be_v bind_v as_o by_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a christian_a prince_n for_o the_o conservation_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o good_a estate_n and_o commonwealth_n of_o this_o his_o realm_n to_o do_v all_o that_o in_o he_o be_v to_o obviate_v repress_v and_o redress_v the_o say_a abusion_n and_o exaction_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n and_o because_o that_o divers_a prelate_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v now_o in_o extreme_a age_n and_o in_o other_o debility_n of_o their_o body_n so_o that_o of_o likelihood_n bodily_a death_n in_o short_a time_n shall_v or_o may_v succeed_v unto_o they_o by_o reason_n whereof_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n shall_v short_o after_o their_o death_n be_v convey_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o unreasonable_a and_o uncharitable_a cause_n abovesaid_a to_o the_o universal_a damage_n prejudice_n and_o impoverishment_n of_o this_o realm_n if_o speedy_a remedy_n be_v not_o in_o due_a time_n provide_v it_o be_v therefore_o ordain_v establish_a and_o enact_v by_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o the_o unlawful_a payment_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n and_o all_o manner_n contribution_n for_o the_o same_o for_o any_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n or_o for_o any_o bull_n hereafter_o to_o be_v obtain_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o or_o for_o the_o foresay_a purpose_n and_o intent_n shall_v from_o henceforth_o utter_o cease_v and_o no_o such_o hereafter_o to_o be_v pay_v for_o any_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n
contrivance_n of_o they_o who_o have_v instruct_v she_o to_o play_v such_o trick_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o other_o evidence_n ibid._n 68_o he_o say_v they_o all_o die_v very_o constant_o and_o on_o the_o margin_n call_v they_o seven_o martyr_n the_o nun_n herself_o acknowledge_v the_o imposture_n at_o her_o death_n and_o lay_v the_o heavy_a weight_n of_o it_o on_o the_o priest_n that_o suffer_v with_o she_o who_o have_v teach_v she_o the_o cheat_n so_o that_o they_o die_v both_o for_o treason_n and_o imposture_n and_o this_o be_v sander_n faith_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o work_n they_o be_v indeed_o martyr_n for_o it_o 69._o he_o say_v more_n and_o fisher_n have_v examine_v she_o ibid._n can_v see_v no_o ground_n to_o think_v she_o be_v act_v by_o a_o fanatical_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v give_v out_o it_o be_v not_o give_v out_o that_o she_o be_v act_v by_o a_o fanatical_a spirit_n for_o that_o have_v be_v more_o honest_a but_o her_o spirit_n be_v cheat_v and_o knavery_n more_o clear_v himself_o and_o look_v on_o she_o as_o a_o weak_a woman_n and_o common_o call_v she_o the_o silly_a maid_n but_o fisher_n do_v disow_v she_o when_o the_o cheat_n be_v discover_v though_o he_o have_v give_v she_o too_o much_o encouragement_n before_o 70._o he_o say_v the_o thing_n she_o prophesy_v come_v to_o pass_v which_o be_v 81._o that_o mary_n shall_v be_v queen_n of_o england_n the_o thing_n for_o which_o she_o and_o her_o complice_n be_v attaint_v of_o treason_n be_v that_o she_o say_v if_o the_o king_n marry_v ann_n boleyn_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o king_n a_o month_n long_o and_o not_o a_o hour_n long_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v die_v a_o villain_n death_n but_o it_o do_v not_o serve_v sander_n end_n to_o tell_v this_o 71._o he_o say_v the_o day_n she_o suffer_v ibid._n many_o of_o the_o nobility_n come_v and_o swear_v to_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o king_n marriage_n with_o queen_n ann_n before_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n and_o cromwell_n both_o house_n of_o parliament_n do_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n take_v that_o oath_n on_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prorogation_n which_o be_v the_o 30_o the_o of_o march_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o second_o act_n of_o the_o next_o session_n and_o the_o nun_n with_o her_o complice_n do_v not_o suffer_v till_o the_o 21_o of_o april_n after_o 72._o he_o say_v the_o franciscan_n of_o the_o observance_n ibid._n chief_o two_o father_n in_o london_n elston_n and_o payton_n do_v both_o in_o their_o sermon_n and_o public_a dispute_n justify_v the_o king_n marriage_n with_o q._n katherine_n elston_n and_o payton_n be_v not_o of_o london_n but_o of_o greenwich_n they_o compare_v the_o king_n to_o achab_n and_o say_v in_o the_o pulpit_n to_o his_o face_n the_o dog_n shall_v lick_v his_o blood_n with_o many_o other_o such_o virulent_a expression_n but_o to_o rail_v at_o a_o prince_n with_o the_o most_o spiteful_a reproach_n that_o can_v be_v be_v a_o part_n of_o sanders_n faith_n and_o so_o no_o wonder_n those_o pass_n for_o confessor_n when_o elizabeth_n barton_n and_o her_o complice_n be_v reckon_v martyr_n 73._o he_o say_v tonstal_v bishop_n of_o duresme_fw-fr 82._o be_v order_v by_o the_o king_n messenger_n not_o to_o come_v to_o the_o session_n of_o parliament_n 26_o regni_n in_o which_o the_o king_n supremacy_n be_v establish_v in_o this_o he_o be_v safe_a than_o in_o some_o other_o story_n for_o the_o journal_o of_o that_o session_n be_v lose_v so_o the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o likely_a that_o he_o who_o justify_v all_o that_o be_v do_v in_o the_o former_a session_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v put_v down_o the_o nomination_n of_o bishop_n annex_v to_o the_o crown_n a_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n appoint_v to_o be_v make_v in_o defence_n of_o all_o which_o he_o write_v afterward_o be_v now_o so_o scrupulous_a as_o to_o be_v order_v to_o stay_v at_o home_n but_o tonstal_n suffer_v imprisonment_n in_o edward_n the_o sixth_n time_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o use_v some_o art_n to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v unwilling_o bring_v to_o comply_v with_o the_o king_n ibid._n 74._o he_o to_o show_v god_n judgement_n on_o the_o chief_a instrument_n that_o serve_v the_o king_n say_z that_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n be_v by_o the_o king_n condemn_v to_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n this_o bewray_v palpable_a ignorance_n since_o he_o be_v attaint_v of_o high_a treason_n the_o very_a day_n before_o the_o king_n death_n and_o shall_v have_v suffer_v the_o next_o day_n if_o the_o king_n death_n have_v not_o prevent_v it_o but_o since_o he_o will_v descant_v on_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v rather_o have_v conclude_v that_o his_o escape_v so_o narrow_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n great_a care_n of_o he_o ibid._n 75._o in_o the_o session_n of_o parliament_n that_o meet_v the_o three_o of_o november_n as_o he_o describe_v it_o which_o be_v the_o 26_o the_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n he_o say_v marry_o the_o king_n daughter_n be_v illegitimated_a and_o all_o her_o honour_n be_v transfer_v on_o elizabeth_n and_o the_o pope_n power_n put_v down_o this_o show_v he_o never_o look_v on_o our_o public_a statute_n otherwise_o he_o have_v see_v that_o these_o act_n pass_v in_o the_o former_a session_n 84._o 76._o he_o say_v when_o the_o king_n send_v his_o ambassador_n to_o the_o french_a court_n francis_n will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v they_o give_v a_o justification_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n how_o true_a this_o can_v be_v the_o world_n may_v judge_n since_o these_o two_o king_n continue_v in_o a_o firm_a alliance_n eight_o year_n after_o this_o and_o francis_n do_v often_o treat_v both_o with_o he_o and_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n about_o these_o thing_n and_o be_v incline_v to_o do_v almost_o all_o that_o he_o do_v ibid._n 77._o he_o say_v the_o lutheran_n do_v so_o abominate_a the_o ground_n of_o his_o separation_n from_o rome_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v induce_v to_o approve_v it_o for_o which_o he_o cite_v cochleus_n a_o author_n of_o his_o own_o kidney_n they_o do_v condemn_v the_o king_n first_o marriage_n as_o unlawful_a and_o think_v the_o pope_n dispensation_n have_v no_o force_n and_o so_o far_o they_o approve_v it_o but_o they_o have_v this_o singular_a opinion_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v continue_v unmarried_a as_o long_o as_o q._n katherine_n live_v yet_o in_o that_o they_o be_v so_o modest_a that_o they_o only_o desire_v to_o be_v excuse_v as_o to_o the_o second_o marriage_n which_o consider_v that_o queen_n ann_n favour_v their_o doctrine_n and_o that_o by_o a_o absolute_a compliance_n with_o what_o the_o king_n have_v do_v they_o may_v have_v secure_v his_o protection_n to_o themselves_o who_o otherwise_o they_o provoke_v high_o be_v a_o evidence_n of_o a_o strict_a adhere_n to_o what_o their_o conscience_n dictate_v that_o can_v be_v sufficient_o commend_v 85._o 78._o he_o say_v the_o king_n make_v many_o write_v apology_n for_o what_o he_o do_v which_o some_o do_v willing_o be_v taint_v with_o heresy_n other_o unwilling_o and_o for_o fear_n as_o gardiner_n and_o tonstall_n in_o this_o he_o show_v how_o little_a judgement_n he_o have_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n when_o he_o think_v to_o excuse_v their_o writing_n for_o the_o king_n as_o extort_a by_o force_n to_o have_v do_v it_o through_o error_n and_o mistake_v be_v much_o the_o soft_a excuse_n but_o to_o make_v they_o man_n of_o such_o prostitute_a conscience_n as_o not_o only_o to_o subscribe_v and_o swear_v but_o to_o write_v with_o learning_n and_o zeal_n and_o yet_o against_o their_o conscience_n represent_v they_o guilty_a of_o unexpressible_a baseness_n indeed_o gardiner_n be_v a_o man_n like_o enough_o to_o write_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v please_v the_o king_n but_o tonstall_n be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a probity_n than_o to_o have_v do_v so_o unworthy_a a_o thing_n upon_o any_o account_n whatsoever_o but_o since_o he_o mention_v writer_n he_o shall_v have_v name_v longland_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n stokesly_n bishop_n of_o london_n and_o above_o all_o bonner_n who_o do_v officious_o thrust_v himself_o into_o the_o debate_n by_o write_v a_o preface_n to_o gardiner_n book_n with_o the_o great_a vehemence_n that_o can_v be_v but_o the_o blood_n he_o shed_v afterward_o do_v so_o endear_v he_o to_o this_o author_n that_o all_o past_a fault_n be_v forgive_v and_o to_o be_v clean_o forget_v 79._o he_o say_v 86_o five_o martyr_n suffer_v because_o they_o will_v not_o swear_v the_o king_n supremacy_n according_a to_o the_o law_n that_o be_v then_o pass_v there_o be_v no_o such_o law_n make_v at_o that_o time_n nor_o
can_v any_o such_o oath_n be_v then_o put_v to_o they_o the_o only_a oath_n which_o the_o parliament_n have_v enact_v be_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o the_o refuse_v it_o be_v only_a misprision_n of_o treason_n and_o be_v not_o punishable_a by_o death_n but_o it_o be_v for_o deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o for_o writing_n and_o speak_v both_o against_o it_o and_o his_o marriage_n that_o they_o suffer_v according_a to_o law_n 80._o he_o say_v cromwell_n threaten_v the_o jury_n in_o the_o king_n name_n 87._o with_o certain_a death_n if_o they_o do_v not_o bring_v they_o in_o guilty_a every_o body_n that_o know_v the_o law_n of_o england_n will_v soon_o conclude_v this_o to_o be_v a_o lie_n for_o no_o such_o threaten_n be_v ever_o make_v in_o trial_n in_o this_o nation_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o need_n at_o this_o time_n for_o the_o law_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o their_o fact_n so_o clear_o prove_v that_o the_o jury_n can_v not_o refuse_v to_o bring_v they_o in_o guilty_a 81._o he_o say_v the_o three_o carthusian_n that_o suffer_v 89_o be_v make_v stand_v upright_a and_o in_o one_o place_n fourteen_o day_n together_o with_o iron_n about_o their_o neck_n arm_n and_o leg_n before_o they_o die_v and_o then_o with_o great_a pomp_n he_o describe_v their_o death_n in_o all_o its_o part_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o new-devised_a cruelty_n it_o be_v the_o death_n which_o the_o law_n appoint_v for_o traitor_n he_o tell_v that_o cromwell_n lament_v that_o other_o of_o they_o have_v die_v in_o their_o cell_n and_o so_o prevent_v his_o cruelty_n he_o also_o add_v a_o long_a story_n of_o the_o severity_n against_o the_o franciscan_n all_o this_o he_o draw_v from_o his_o learning_n in_o the_o legend_n the_o english_a nation_n know_v none_o of_o these_o cruelty_n in_o which_o the_o spanish_a inquisitor_n be_v very_o expert_a i_o find_v by_o some_o original_a letter_n that_o the_o carthusian_n who_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o their_o cell_n live_v about_o a_o year_n after_o this_o so_o if_o cromwell_n have_v design_v to_o take_v away_o their_o life_n he_o want_v not_o opportunity_n but_o it_o appear_v from_o what_o more_o write_v in_o his_o imprisonment_n that_o cromwell_n be_v not_o a_o cruel_a man_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a merciful_a and_o gentle_a and_o for_o the_o franciscan_n though_o they_o have_v offend_v the_o king_n high_o two_o of_o they_o rail_v spiteful_o at_o he_o to_o his_o face_n in_o his_o chapel_n at_o greenwich_n yet_o that_o be_v pass_v over_o with_o a_o reproof_n from_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v not_o easy_o provoke_v against_o they_o so_o all_o that_o relation_n which_o he_o give_v be_v without_o any_o authority_n must_v pass_v for_o a_o part_n of_o the_o poem_n 82._o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n be_v condemn_v 91._o because_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n he_o be_v never_o press_v to_o acknowledge_v it_o but_o be_v condemn_v for_o deny_v it_o and_o speak_v against_o it_o for_o have_v he_o keep_v his_o opinion_n to_o himself_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v question_v but_o the_o deny_v the_o king_n title_n of_o which_o his_o be_v supreme_a head_n be_v one_o be_v by_o the_o law_n treason_n so_o he_o be_v try_v for_o speak_v against_o it_o and_o not_o for_o his_o not_o acknowledge_v it_o 93._o 83._o he_o run_v out_o in_o a_o high_a commendation_n of_o fisher_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n mention_n his_o episcopal_a and_o apostolical_a charity_n his_o charity_n be_v burn_v indeed_o he_o be_v a_o merciless_a prosecutor_n of_o heretic_n so_o that_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n under_o which_o he_o fall_v be_v the_o same_o measure_n that_o he_o have_v measure_v out_o to_o other_o 100_o 84._o sander_n will_v let_v the_o world_n see_v how_o careful_o he_o have_v read_v the_o legend_n and_o how_o skilful_o he_o can_v write_v after_o that_o copy_n in_o a_o pretty_a fabulous_a story_n concern_v more_o be_v death_n to_o who_o i_o will_v deny_v none_o of_o the_o praise_n due_a to_o his_o memory_n for_o his_o great_a learning_n and_o singular_a probity_n nor_o have_v he_o any_o blemish_n but_o what_o flow_v from_o the_o leaven_n of_o that_o cruel_a religion_n which_o carry_v he_o to_o great_a severity_n against_o those_o that_o preach_v for_o a_o reformation_n his_o daughter_n roper_n be_v a_o woman_n of_o great_a virtue_n and_o worthy_a of_o such_o a_o father_n who_o need_v none_o of_o sanders_n art_n to_o represent_v she_o well_o to_o the_o world_n his_o story_n be_v that_o the_o morning_n her_o father_n die_v she_o go_v about_o distribute_v all_o the_o money_n she_o have_v in_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o at_o last_o be_v at_o her_o prayer_n in_o a_o church_n when_o of_o a_o sudden_a she_o remember_v that_o she_o have_v forget_v to_o provide_v a_o winding-sheet_n for_o his_o body_n but_o have_v no_o more_o money_n leave_v and_o not_o be_v well_o know_v in_o that_o place_n she_o apprehend_v they_o will_v not_o give_v her_o credit_n yet_o she_o go_v to_o a_o linendrapers_n shop_n and_o call_v for_o so_o much_o cloth_n she_o put_v her_o hand_n in_o her_o pocket_n know_v she_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o intend_v to_o make_v a_o excuse_n and_o try_v if_o they_o will_v trust_v she_o but_o by_o a_o miracle_n she_o find_v the_o price_n of_o the_o sheet_n and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o be_v convey_v into_o her_o pocket_n this_o be_v such_o a_o lively_a essay_n of_o the_o man_n spirit_n that_o invent_v it_o that_o i_o leave_v it_o without_o any_o further_a commentary_n 105._o 58._o he_o say_v loe_o that_o be_v not_o in_o order_n be_v send_v to_o visit_v the_o monastery_n who_o solicit_v the_o chastity_n of_o the_o nun_n he_o do_v not_o mention_n leighton_n and_o london_n the_o two_o chief_a visitor_n for_o leighton_n bring_v in_o lee_n but_o they_o be_v of_o the_o popish_a party_n and_o lee_n be_v cranmer_n friend_n therefore_o all_o must_v be_v lay_v on_o he_o he_o be_v in_o order_n and_o soon_o after_o be_v make_v dean_n of_o york_n i_o have_v see_v complaint_n of_o dr._n london_n solicit_v the_o nun_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o find_v lee_n complain_v of_o but_o since_o london_n be_v a_o persecutor_n of_o heretic_n such_o a_o small_a kindness_n as_o the_o conceal_v his_o name_n and_o the_o turn_v the_o blame_n over_o on_o lee_n be_v not_o to_o be_v stand_v on_o among_o friend_n especial_o by_o a_o man_n of_o sander_n ingenuity_n 107._o 86._o for_o the_o correspondence_n between_o q._n katherine_n and_o father_n forest_n and_o the_o letter_n that_o past_a since_o sanders_n tell_v we_o not_o a_o word_n how_o he_o come_v by_o they_o we_o be_v to_o look_v on_o they_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o romance_n 87._o he_o say_v 114._o ann_n boleyn_n bear_v a_o monstrous_a and_o a_o misshape_a lump_n of_o flesh_n when_o the_o time_n of_o her_o bear_v another_o child_n come_v she_o bear_v a_o dead_a child_n before_o the_o time_n say_v hall_n but_o there_o be_v no_o great_a reproach_n in_o that_o unless_o make_v up_o by_o sanders_n wit_n 88_o he_o lay_v out_o the_o business_n of_o ann_n boleyn_n with_o so_o much_o spite_n and_o malice_n 115._o that_o we_o may_v easy_o see_v against_o who_o he_o chief_o design_v this_o part_n of_o his_o work_n he_o say_v she_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o adultery_n and_o incest_n there_o be_v no_o evidence_n against_o she_o but_o only_o a_o hear-say_n from_o the_o lady_n wingfield_n we_o neither_o know_v the_o credit_n of_o that_o lady_n nor_o of_o the_o person_n who_o relate_v it_o in_o her_o name_n it_o be_v true_a mark_v smeton_n do_v confess_v his_o adultery_n with_o the_o queen_n but_o it_o be_v general_o think_v he_o be_v draw_v into_o it_o by_o some_o promise_n that_o be_v make_v to_o he_o and_o so_o cheat_v out_o of_o his_o life_n but_o for_o the_o queen_n and_o the_o other_o four_o they_o attest_v their_o innocency_n to_o the_o last_o nor_o will_v any_o of_o those_o unfortunate_a person_n redeem_v their_o life_n at_o so_o ignominious_a a_o rate_n as_o to_o charge_v the_o queen_n who_o they_o declare_v they_o know_v to_o be_v innocent_a so_o that_o all_o the_o evidence_n against_o she_o be_v a_o hear-say_n of_o a_o woman_n that_o be_v dead_a the_o confession_n of_o a_o poor_a musician_n and_o some_o idle_a word_n herself_o speak_v of_o the_o discourse_n that_o have_v pass_v between_o she_o and_o some_o of_o those_o gentleman_n 89._o he_o say_v foreigner_n do_v general_o rejoice_v at_o she_o fall_v 116._o and_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o cite_v cochleus_n word_n that_o only_o show_v that_o author_n ill_a opinion_n of_o she_o the_o german_n have_v so_o great_a a_o value_n of_o she_o that_o all_o their_o
which_o see_v page_n 224._o which_o be_v so_o open_o discover_v nothing_o that_o have_v shame_n in_o it_o can_v speak_v of_o they_o as_o our_o author_n do_v 131._o 101._o he_o say_v six_o and_o twenty_o cart_n draw_v with_o ox_n be_v load_v with_o the_o riches_n take_v from_o becket_n shrine_n who_o he_o make_v a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n that_o die_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o be_v honour_v by_o many_o miracle_n after_o his_o death_n other_o writer_n have_v sufficient_o show_v what_o a_o perfidious_a ingrateful_a and_o turbulent_a priest_n he_o be_v all_o these_o be_v virtue_n in_o our_o author_n opinion_n and_o ingredient_n in_o his_o faith_n but_o he_o have_v in_o this_o account_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o that_o shrine_n go_v beyond_o himself_o have_v by_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n very_o familiar_a to_o he_o call_v lie_v increase_v two_o chest_n see_v page_n 224._o to_o 26_o cart_n load_v 1●2_n 102._o he_o say_v the_o sentence_n which_o p._n paul_n give_v out_o against_o the_o king_n be_v affix_v in_o some_o town_n both_o in_o france_n flanders_n and_o scotland_n from_o which_o he_o infer_v that_o both_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a and_o the_o scotch_a king_n do_v consent_n to_o that_o sentence_n in_o this_o he_o design_v a_o eminent_a piece_n of_o service_n to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v to_o leave_v on_o record_n a_o evidence_n that_o three_o sovereign_a prince_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v king_n but_o he_o do_v ill_a to_o name_v the_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n and_o have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v say_v simple_o that_o it_o be_v so_o than_o to_o have_v found_v it_o on_o so_o ill_a ground_n as_o if_o the_o affix_v papal_a bull_n in_o a_o place_n be_v a_o evidence_n that_o the_o prince_n in_o who_o dominion_n it_o be_v do_v consent_v to_o it_o he_o may_v with_o the_o same_o reason_n have_v conclude_v that_o q._n elizabeth_n consent_v to_o the_o sentence_n against_o herself_o which_o it_o be_v very_o like_a will_v not_o be_v easy_o believe_v though_o the_o bull_n be_v affix_v in_o london_n but_o all_o those_o very_a prince_n who_o he_o name_v continue_v to_o keep_v up_o their_o correspondence_n with_o the_o king_n as_o well_o after_o as_o before_o this_o sentence_n be_v a_o much_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o they_o despise_v the_o pope_n sentence_n 134._o 103._o he_o say_v the_o king_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n throw_v all_o the_o ●egging_a order_n out_o of_o their_o house_n the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o have_v appear_v already_o for_o they_o resign_v their_o house_n to_o the_o king_n and_o of_o these_o resignation_n though_o many_o be_v destroy_v yet_o near_o a_o hundred_o be_v still_o extant_a ibid._n 104._o he_o say_v the_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1539_o give_v the_o king_n all_o the_o great_a monastery_n the_o parliament_n pass_v no_o such_o act_n all_o that_o they_o do_v be_v only_o to_o confirm_v the_o grant_n make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v by_o these_o house_n to_o the_o king_n it_o be_v their_o surrender_n that_o clothe_v the_o king_n with_o the_o right_n to_o they_o all_o the_o tragical_a story_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o follow_v upon_o this_o be_v found_v on_o a_o false_a foundation_n 135._o 105._o he_o set_v down_o a_o form_n of_o a_o resignation_n which_o he_o say_v all_z the_o abbot_n and_o many_o religious_a person_n be_v make_v to_o sign_n and_o set_v their_o seal_n to_o it_o among_o all_o the_o resignation_n which_o be_v yet_o extant_a there_o be_v not_o one_o in_o this_o form_n for_o which_o see_v page_n 238._o 106._o he_o say_v the_o king_n commissioner_n 136._o who_o go_v about_o get_v hand_n to_o that_o form_n make_v they_o believe_v in_o every_o house_n that_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v sign_v it_o and_o so_o by_o that_o and_o other_o persuasion_n prevail_v with_o many_o to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o it_o if_o all_o the_o subscription_n have_v be_v procure_v about_o the_o same_o time_n such_o art_n may_v be_v suspect_v but_o in_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v three_o year_n do_v these_o trick_n can_v not_o have_v serve_v their_o turn_n 107._o he_o say_v they_o tell_v the_o monk_n that_o though_o the_o king_n may_v ibid._n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n seize_v on_o their_o house_n and_o rent_n yet_o he_o desire_v rather_o to_o do_v it_o with_o their_o goodwill_n in_o this_o there_o be_v two_o error_n first_o most_o of_o these_o house_n be_v resign_v to_o the_o king_n before_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n see_v page_n 235._o and_o next_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n only_o confirm_v their_o deed_n but_o do_v not_o give_v their_o house_n to_o the_o king_n 108._o he_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n colchester_n and_o read_v 137._o suffer_v martyrdom_n because_o they_o refuse_v to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o that_o write_n there_o be_v no_o such_o write_n ever_o offer_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o law_n to_o force_v they_o to_o resign_v so_o they_o can_v not_o suffer_v on_o that_o account_n but_o they_o be_v martyr_n for_o sander_n faith_n for_o they_o be_v attaint_v by_o a_o legal_a trial_n of_o high_a treason_n 109._o he_o tell_v a_o long_a story_n of_o whitting_n abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n be_v bring_v up_o to_o london_n 138._o to_o be_v prevail_v with_o to_o set_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o surrender_n which_o he_o still_o refuse_v to_o do_v be_v send_v back_o and_o though_o a_o book_n against_o the_o king_n divorce_n be_v find_v among_o his_o paper_n which_o be_v lay_v there_o by_o those_o who_o search_v for_o it_o yet_o that_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o a_o chide_n but_o as_o he_o go_v home_o hear_v there_o be_v a_o meeting_n of_o the_o county_n at_o wells_n he_o go_v thither_o and_o as_o he_o be_v go_v up_o to_o his_o place_n on_o the_o bench_n he_o be_v call_v to_o the_o bar_n to_o answer_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v object_v to_o he_o he_o be_v amaze_v at_o it_o and_o ask_v what_o the_o matter_n be_v but_o one_o tell_v he_o he_o need_v fear_v nothing_o for_o somewhat_o be_v only_o to_o be_v do_v for_o form_n to_o terrify_v other_o upon_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v and_o send_v away_o to_o his_o abbey_n little_o think_v he_o be_v so_o near_o his_o end_n but_o when_o he_o come_v near_o it_o a_o priest_n be_v send_v to_o he_o to_o take_v his_o confession_n for_o they_o tell_v he_o he_o must_v die_v immediate_o he_o beg_v a_o day_n or_o two_o respite_n but_o in_o vain_a so_o they_o hang_v he_o up_o in_o his_o habit_n on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o hill_n near_o his_o abbey_n and_o quarter_v he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v in_o one_o day_n this_o book_n come_v out_o in_o foreign_a part_n and_o be_v print_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o sixtus_n the_o five_o who_o take_v great_a pleasure_n in_o such_o execution_n as_o he_o describe_v this_o to_o have_v be_v which_o may_v fall_v oft_o out_o where_o the_o life_n of_o the_o subject_n be_v whole_o at_o the_o prince_n mercy_n but_o to_o tell_v such_o tale_n of_o england_n which_o be_v so_o fame_v over_o the_o world_n for_o the_o safety_n and_o security_n the_o subject_n enjoy_v and_o for_o the_o regular_a and_o legal_a proceed_n in_o all_o trial_n especial_o of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v a_o great_a error_n in_o the_o poet_n for_o the_o decorum_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o a_o place_n must_v be_v observe_v when_o any_o nation_n be_v make_v the_o scene_n of_o a_o fable_n but_o as_o nothing_o like_o this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o it_o in_o this_o case_n the_o jury_n that_o sit_v on_o he_o be_v man_n of_o great_a credit_n in_o the_o country_n when_o he_o die_v he_o acknowledge_v his_o offence_n and_o with_o appearance_n of_o repentance_n beg_v god_n pardon_n and_o the_o king_n be_v see_v page_n 239._o 145._o 110._o after_o many_o bitter_a invective_n against_o cromwell_n for_o which_o i_o can_v never_o see_v good_a evidence_n though_o i_o can_v disprove_v they_o by_o any_o convince_a argument_n he_o say_v that_o he_o advise_v the_o king_n to_o make_v a_o law_n that_o person_n may_v be_v convent_v and_o condemn_v in_o absence_n and_o without_o be_v hear_v and_o that_o this_o law_n first_o of_o all_o fell_a upon_o himself_o there_o be_v no_o such_o law_n ever_o make_v only_o the_o parliament_n by_o their_o supreme_a authority_n do_v attaint_v some_o in_o that_o manner_n but_o no_o other_o court_n may_v do_v it_o nor_o be_v this_o first_o apply_v to_o cromwell_n for_o a_o year_n before_o his_o attainder_n the_o countess_n of_o sarum_n with_o a_o great_a many_o more_o be_v so_o attaint_v though_o she_o do_v not_o suffer_v till_o a_o year_n